predestinate_a 19_o 2._o tim._n 2._o v._n 19_o only_o to_o belong_v unto_o this_o their_o invisible_a church_n as_o we_o have_v now_o declare_v who_o be_v only_o know_v unto_o god_n and_o unknown_a unto_o all_o other_o 11._o hither_o also_o it_o belong_v that_o those_o can_v not_o be_v saint_n &_o predestinate_v who_o have_v be_v for_o these_o many_o age_n pass_v in_o that_o invisible_a church_n of_o our_o adversary_n for_o those_o if_o peradventure_o there_o be_v any_o neither_o dare_v public_o profess_v christ_n nor_o preach_v open_o the_o gospel_n but_o terrify_v with_o humane_a fear_n have_v do_v all_o thing_n by_o dissimulation_n and_o hypocrisy_n lest_o they_o may_v be_v bewray_v and_o make_v know_v unto_o other_o for_o otherwise_o they_o shall_v have_v be_v visible_a &_o not_o invisible_a 26._o luc._n 9_o v._n 26._o but_o christ_n say_v that_o he_o that_o shall_v be_v ashamed_a of_o i_o and_o that_o which_o i_o teach_v he_o the_o son_n of_o man_n will_v be_v ashamed_a oâ_n when_o he_o shall_v come_v in_o his_o majesty_n 12._o last_o our_o adversary_n be_v urge_v with_o so_o many_o and_o invincible_a reason_n see_v well_o enough_o especial_o the_o wise_a sort_n of_o they_o how_o absurd_a the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o invisible_a church_n be_v and_o therefore_o many_o of_o they_o now_o adays_o acknowledge_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n to_o have_v be_v always_o visible_a and_o moreover_o that_o this_o visible_a church_n remain_v still_o in_o the_o popedom_n as_o they_o speak_v for_o they_o can_v assign_v any_o other_o visible_a &_o ever_o continue_v church_n beside_o that_o of_o rome_n but_o lest_o they_o be_v convince_v of_o falsehood_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o visible_a church_n they_o seek_v out_o some_o other_o evasion_n for_o they_o say_v this_o visible_a church_n may_v yea_o have_v often_o err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n the_o which_o error_n we_o will_v seq_n cap._n 7._o seq_n confuâe_v a_o little_a after_o assoon_o as_o we_o have_v answer_v the_o argument_n object_v by_o our_o adversary_n against_o this_o chapter_n chap._n v._o the_o argument_n against_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v confute_v many_o of_o our_o adversary_n reason_n do_v not_o so_o much_o prove_v that_o 7._o infr._n c._n 7._o the_o visible_a church_n have_v perish_v &_o decay_a as_o that_o it_o have_v err_v in_o faith_n the_o which_o therefore_o shall_v be_v confute_v afterward_o when_o we_o declare_v that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n the_o rest_n of_o their_o argument_n be_v 9_o tom._n 2._o epi._n 48._o &_o tom._n 7._o de_fw-la uni_fw-la eccles_n c._n ââ_o &_o ad_fw-la donat._n post_n col_fw-fr ââ_o 20._o in_o fine_a 3._o reg._n 19_o v._n 10._o calu_n in_o ârâfâ_n ââarum_fw-la ââst_n beza_n â_o 5._o suae_fw-la confess_v ârt_n 9_o almost_o all_o one_o with_o the_o old_a reason_n of_o the_o donatist_n for_o they_o in_o time_n past_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v perish_v through_o out_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o only_o in_o africa_n unto_o who_o s._n augustine_n answer_v very_o well_o in_o many_o place_n but_o we_o will_v only_o here_o brief_o examine_v the_o more_o probable_a argument_n and_o now_o a_o day_n more_o use_v by_o our_o adversary_n 2._o the_o first_o argument_n be_v take_v out_o of_o those_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n elias_n i_o be_o leave_v alone_o and_o they_o seek_v my_o life_n i_o answer_v that_o this_o argument_n be_v of_o no_o moment_n albeit_o our_o adversary_n caluin_n and_o beza_n do_v often_o use_v it_o for_o elias_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o only_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n wherein_o the_o wicked_a king_n achab_n 18._o 3._o reg._n 16._o v._n 18._o then_o reign_v albeit_o in_o it_o also_o there_o be_v seven_o thousand_o man_n who_o do_v not_o adore_v baal_n and_o who_o make_v a_o visible_a church_n moreover_o at_o that_o very_a time_n josaphat_n a_o very_a pious_a and_o godly_a king_n reign_v &_o there_o be_v also_o the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o priest_n and_o sacrifice_n as_o also_o public_a solemn_a and_o daily_a service_n of_o god_n yea_o out_o of_o the_o second_o book_n of_o paralippomenon_n we_o gather_v that_o king_n josaphat_n labour_v very_o much_o to_o conserve_v seq_fw-la 2._o paral._n 19_o v._o 4._o &_o seq_fw-la and_o increase_v the_o honour_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n neither_o be_v the_o number_n of_o they_o little_a who_o profess_v public_o the_o true_a religion_n for_o in_o the_o same_o book_n be_v account_v and_o number_v more_o than_o eleven_o hundred_o thousand_o strong_a soldier_n beside_o woman_n and_o other_o less_o fit_a for_o war_n by_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o church_n of_o seq_fw-la 2._o paral._n 17._o v._o 14._o &_o seq_fw-la god_n be_v not_o invisible_a in_o josaphats_n kingdom_n but_o rather_o very_o visible_a and_o conspicuous_a but_o elias_n only_o complain_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n they_o to_o wit_n the_o child_n of_o israel_n and_o not_o the_o child_n of_o juda_n have_v 10._o 3._o reg._n 19_o v._n 10._o forsake_v thy_o covenant_n neither_o do_v we_o deny_v but_o that_o in_o some_o one_o or_o other_o kingdom_n there_o may_v sometime_o peradventure_o have_v be_v few_o or_o no_o christian_n while_o in_o far_o more_o place_n the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v very_o manifest_a and_o visible_a but_o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o where_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v most_o absurd_a and_o express_o against_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 3._o the_o second_o argument_n be_v take_v out_o of_o many_o place_n of_o isay_n &_o jeremy_n wherein_o those_o prophet_n complain_v that_o all_o the_o jew_n do_v transgress_v the_o covenant_n make_v with_o god_n moreover_o they_o object_v the_o small_a number_n of_o those_o who_o be_v sometime_o in_o the_o ancient_a church_n before_o christ_n time_n or_o even_o in_o christ_n time_n before_o the_o gospel_n be_v promulgate_v and_o here_o they_o make_v many_o digression_n to_o noë_n and_o adam_n himself_o the_o very_a same_o argument_n the_o donatist_n also_o use_v as_o the_o word_n of_o bishop_n pââiliân_v testify_v relate_v by_o s._n augustine_n but_o fine_a vide_fw-la s._n august_n tom._n 7._o de_fw-la unât_fw-la eccl_n c._n 13._o s._n aug._n tom._n 7._o in_o lib._n ad_fw-la don_n it_o post_fw-la âoll_n c._n 20._o in_o fine_a s._n augustine_n answer_v very_o well_o to_o those_o general_a complaint_n of_o the_o prophet_n that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v a_o peculiar_a phrase_n oâ_n manner_n of_o speak_v who_o so_o reprehend_v the_o evil_a as_o though_o every_o one_o of_o that_o company_n of_o people_n be_v wicked_a man_n &_o so_o commend_v the_o good_a as_o if_o they_o be_v all_o such_o and_o this_o s._n augustine_n prove_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n out_o of_o diverse_a place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 4._o our_o adversary_n also_o who_o will_v seem_v skilful_a and_o cunning_a in_o the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a language_n shall_v call_v to_o mind_n that_o aswell_o the_o general_a particle_n among_o the_o hebrew_n call_v col_fw-fr as_o that_o other_o which_o 1._o de_fw-fr voce_fw-mi col_fw-fr vide_fw-la galat._n l._n 5._o c._n 4._o joan._n fost_n luth_n &_o io._n mer._n cal._n in_o radicâ_n cal._n in_o c._n 2._o philip._n v._o 1â_n &_o beza_n ib._n &_o in_o 1._o tim_n 2._o v._n 1._o ed._n an._n 1565._o &_o in_o edit_n a_o 1598._o v._n 4._o ibid._n isa_n 1._o v._n 1._o oze_n 1._o v._n 1._o amos._n 1._o v._o 1._o mich_n 1._o v._n 1._o jerem._n 1._o v._o 1._o ezechiel_n 1._o v._o 2._o dan_o 1._o v._n 2._o sophon_n 1_o v._o 1._o answer_v unto_o it_o in_o the_o greek_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d or_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d be_v often_o use_v in_o holy_a scripture_n not_o general_o for_o every_o thing_n without_o any_o exception_n but_o for_o that_o which_o common_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v do_v as_o also_o non_fw-la pro_fw-la singulis_fw-la geâerum_fw-la sed_fw-la pro_fw-la generibus_fw-la singulorum_fw-la the_o which_o not_o only_o the_o hebrew_n lexicon_n write_v by_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o do_v plain_o demonstrate_v but_o also_o their_o chief_a &_o principal_a ringleader_n caluin_n &_o beza_n the_o late_a whereof_o add_v also_o that_o we_o have_v observe_v that_o a_o general_a particle_n be_v almost_o in_o every_o leaf_n of_o holy_a scripture_n use_v indefinite_o it_o be_v therefore_o most_o true_a which_o s._n augustine_n say_v that_o this_o word_n all_o in_o these_o kind_n of_o place_n be_v take_v for_o many_o or_o for_o that_o which_o be_v common_a every_o where_n as_o caluin_n and_o beza_n say_v for_o otherwise_o it_o be_v well_o enough_o know_v that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o prophet_n isay_n there_o be_v some_o holy_a king_n as_o ozias_n and_o ezechias_n in_o jury_n as_o also_o those_o prophet_n ozea_n
believe_v by_o faith_n be_v invisible_a but_o by_o faith_n we_o believe_v there_o be_v a_o catholic_a church_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o apostle_n creed_n therefore_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v invisible_a and_o not_o visible_a i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v a_o weak_a argument_n albeit_o prinâ_n calu._n l._n 4._o ânstit_fw-la c._n â_o sect_n 1._o in_o prinâ_n caluin_n also_o use_v it_o for_o if_o it_o be_v not_o it_o will_v prove_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v also_o invisible_a because_o we_o believe_v also_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o faith_n yea_o it_o will_v also_o prove_v even_o our_o adversary_n church_n to_o be_v as_o yet_o invisible_a for_o they_o as_o yet_o believe_v their_o church_n by_o faith_n and_o yet_o they_o confess_v that_o their_o church_n be_v now_o visible_a and_o true_o if_o their_o church_n have_v remain_v still_o invisible_a they_o have_v never_o cause_v so_o many_o tumult_n in_o the_o christian_a commonwealth_n but_o certain_o even_o as_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o see_v one_o thing_n and_o believe_v another_o we_o see_v the_o letter_n &_o character_n the_o which_o the_o infidel_n also_o see_v but_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v most_o true_a in_o all_o thing_n the_o which_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v so_o we_o sâ_n that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v extant_a the_o which_o also_o the_o infidel_n do_v see_v for_o turk_n &_o jew_n do_v very_o well_o know_v that_o there_o be_v a_o pope_n and_o that_o there_o be_v bishop_n prince_n and_o christian_a nation_n but_o we_o believe_v that_o this_o church_n which_o we_o see_v be_v a_o holy_a church_n be_v govern_v &_o direct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o she_o can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n all_o which_o the_o infidel_n do_v not_o believe_v 3._o the_o five_o argument_n none_o be_v in_o the_o church_n but_o by_o faith_n but_o faith_n be_v invisible_a therefore_o the_o church_n also_o be_v invisible_a i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v a_o very_a weak_a consequence_n for_o otherwise_o we_o may_v reason_v thus_o none_o be_v man_n but_o by_o a_o reasonable_a soul_n but_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n endue_v with_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n be_v invisible_a therefore_o the_o whole_a man_n also_o be_v invisible_a also_o no_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v accounetd_v holy_a but_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n but_o this_o authority_n be_v invisible_a therefore_o the_o scripture_n also_o be_v invisible_a for_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o a_o thing_n may_v be_v call_v visible_a that_o the_o chief_a part_n or_o reason_n thereof_o be_v visible_a but_o it_o suffici_v if_o any_o part_n thereof_o be_v visible_a as_o manifest_o appear_v in_o all_o visible_a substance_n for_o their_o chief_a part_n to_o wit_n their_o substantial_a matter_n and_o form_n be_v thing_n invisible_a 4._o second_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o faith_n whereby_o a_o man_n be_v make_v a_o member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v not_o only_o a_o interior_a faith_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v see_v but_o that_o which_o be_v evident_o see_v and_o declare_v by_o exterior_a sign_n as_o for_o example_n by_o confess_v public_o the_o say_a faith_n by_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n and_o such_o other_o exterior_a act_n the_o which_o be_v so_o true_a that_o this_o exterior_a profession_n of_o our_o faith_n only_o without_o the_o interior_a faith_n suffice_v that_o a_o man_n become_v a_o member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n as_o bellarmine_n well_o prove_v â0_n bell._n l._n 3._o de_fw-la milit_fw-la eccl._n c._n â0_n see_v that_o otherwise_o none_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o his_o prelate_n or_o pastor_n because_o none_o can_v see_v the_o faith_n or_o mind_n oâ_n another_o 5._o hence_o also_o it_o be_v that_o not_o only_o the_o predestinate_a and_o just_a man_n be_v member_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n but_o also_o such_o as_o be_v hypocrite_n and_o wicked_a man_n who_o profess_v their_o faith_n according_a to_o those_o word_n of_o 6._o joan._n ââ_o v._o 2._o ibid._n v._o 6._o christ_n every_o branch_n in_o i_o not_o bear_v fruit_n he_o will_v take_v it_o away_o and_o if_o any_o abide_v not_o in_o i_o he_o shall_v be_v cast_v forth_o by_o which_o word_n christ_n show_v that_o they_o also_o who_o do_v not_o remain_v in_o he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v those_o which_o be_v not_o predestinate_a and_o those_o which_o do_v not_o bring_v forth_o any_o fruit_n that_o be_v to_o say_v bad_a christian_n be_v in_o he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o his_o visible_a body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n the_o which_o also_o almost_o all_o our_o adversary_n confess_v as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o and_o bellarmine_n prove_v more_o at_o large_a 6._o the_o sixth_o argument_n our_o adversary_n 14._o apoc._n 12_o v._o â_o 14._o deduce_v out_o of_o the_o apocalyps_n wherein_o it_o be_v say_v that_o a_o woman_n ââuested_v with_o the_o sun_n which_o signify_v the_o true_a church_n flee_v into_o the_o desert_n and_o remain_v there_o for_o the_o space_n of_o 1260._o day_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o our_o adversary_n interpret_v it_o a_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o and_o sixty_o year_n out_o of_o which_o they_o infer_v that_o the_o church_n remain_v invisible_a as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o desert_n these_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o and_o sixty_o year_n last_o pass_v i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v a_o vicious_a argument_n for_o many_o reason_n for_o first_o it_o be_v very_o absurd_a to_o think_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n do_v lie_v hide_a and_o invisible_a these_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o sixty_o year_n past_a for_o thereupon_o it_o will_v ensue_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v invisible_a then_o when_o it_o most_o flourish_v &_o be_v spread_v abroad_o over_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o for_o example_n in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n augustine_n ambrose_n hilary_n athanasius_n hierome_n chrysostome_n cyril_n etc._n etc._n yea_o in_o the_o time_n also_o of_o all_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n the_o which_o our_o adversary_n 6._o confess_v rupell_v art_n 6._o themselves_o do_v admit_v in_o their_o confession_n of_o faith_n for_o all_o these_o father_n and_o ancient_a counsel_n have_v be_v within_o the_o space_n of_o the_o foresaid_a thousand_o two_o hundred_o and_o sixty_o year_n the_o which_o our_o adversary_n do_v account_n from_o pope_n silvester_n till_o luther_n time_n wherefore_o this_o place_n of_o the_o apoââlyps_n be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o year_n but_o literal_o of_o day_n only_o 7._o moreover_o it_o be_v not_o certain_a that_o by_o this_o word_n desert_n be_v understand_v any_o solitary_a place_n or_o such_o as_o be_v deprive_v of_o all_o the_o society_n or_o comfort_n of_o man_n for_o primasius_n s._n apoc._n prima_fw-la in_o cap._n 12._o apoc._n augustine_n scholar_n say_v that_o by_o the_o foresay_a word_n be_v signify_v the_o whole_a world_n the_o which_o also_o that_o desert_n signify_v through_o the_o which_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n 34._o numer_n 14._o v._n 34._o pass_v before_o they_o come_v to_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n even_o as_o by_o the_o say_a land_n of_o promise_n be_v also_o signify_v the_o everlasting_a life_n some_o other_o will_v have_v the_o foresay_a word_n desert_n to_o signfy_v a_o departure_n or_o forsake_v of_o all_o sin_n and_o vice_n and_o all_o other_o pleasure_n of_o this_o world_n according_a to_o that_o say_n of_o the_o prophet_n osee_n i_o will_v carry_v and_o lead_v she_o into_o the_o desert_n and_o i_o will_v speak_v unto_o 8._o osee_n v._o 14._o psal_n 54._o v._n 8._o her_o hart_n and_o that_o of_o david_n behold_v fly_v away_o i_o go_v far_o off_o and_o i_o remain_v in_o the_o desert_n 8._o last_o albeit_o we_o shall_v grant_v that_o this_o desert_n be_v some_o wild_a or_o forsake_a place_n yet_o nevertheless_o it_o can_v not_o be_v gather_v thereby_o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n either_o be_v or_o ever_o shall_v be_v invisible_a for_o neither_o this_o woman_n which_o flee_v into_o the_o wilderness_n signify_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o some_o one_o famous_a church_n the_o which_o antichrist_n shall_v persecure_v most_o of_o all_o because_o it_o will_v strong_o oppose_v itself_o against_o his_o impiety_n and_o wickedness_n and_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o foresaid_a vision_n s._n john_n plain_o affirm_v that_o the_o dragon_n 17._o apoc._n â2_n v._o 17._o after_o the_o delivery_n of_o that_o woman_n shall_v make_v war_n against_o the_o rest_n of_o her_o seed_n who_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o have_v the_o testimony_n of_o jesus_n christ_n therefore_o beside_o that_o woman_n there_o will_v be_v some_o out_n of_o the_o desert_n who_o will_v public_o profess_v the_o true_a faith_n of_o christ_n against_o who_o for_o that_o cause_n the_o dragon_n will_v fight_v 9_o but_o that_o we_o may_v now_o conclude_v
perspicuous_o resolve_v their_o first_o argument_n be_v if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o faith_n than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o our_o faith_n rely_v upon_o man_n and_o not_o upon_o god_n for_o the_o church_n consist_v of_o man_n our_o adversary_n do_v often_o repeat_v and_o inculcate_v this_o argument_n unto_o us._n i_o answer_n that_o the_o same_o argument_n if_o it_o be_v any_o thing_n worth_a will_v also_o prove_v that_o we_o shall_v not_o believe_v scripture_n because_o althose_n who_o write_v the_o book_n of_o the_o bibles_n be_v also_o man_n buâââ_n we_o do_v believe_v their_o write_n not_o because_o they_o be_v man_n but_o because_o they_o have_v a_o certain_a peculiar_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o do_v so_o govern_v and_o direct_v they_o that_o they_o can_v not_o err_v so_o in_o like_a manner_n we_o believe_v the_o church_n and_o make_v it_o the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n not_o as_o it_o consist_v of_o man_n but_o as_o it_o have_v a_o special_a and_o continual_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o who_o she_o be_v continual_o govern_v and_o direct_v whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o she_o can_v never_o err_v as_o we_o have_v prove_v praece_v cap._n 7._o praece_v a_o little_a before_o 2._o wherefore_o to_o make_v the_o church_n the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v nothing_o else_o then_o to_o make_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o christ_n himself_o the_o ground_n thereof_o for_o it_o be_v he_o who_o speak_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n according_a to_o that_o say_n of_o s._n paul_n seek_v you_o a_o experiment_n of_o he_o that_o speak_v in_o i_o christ_n and_o in_o another_o place_n speak_v of_o his_o own_o 8._o 2._o cor._n 13._o v._n 3._o 1._o thess_n v._o 8._o doctrine_n he_o say_v therefore_o he_o that_o despise_v these_o thing_n despise_v not_o man_n but_o god_n who_o also_o have_v give_v his_o holy_a spirit_n in_o us._n but_o our_o adversary_n do_v think_v &_o speak_v too_o base_o of_o the_o church_n as_o though_o it_o consist_v of_o man_n only_o as_o the_o church_n of_o infidel_n and_o heretic_n see_v that_o the_o chief_a part_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o soul_n and_o spirit_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o but_o neither_o be_v this_o to_o make_v the_o scripture_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n subject_a &_o inferito_fw-la our_o man_n as_o our_o adversary_n be_v wont_v to_o cavil_v but_o only_a to_o show_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v every_o where_o conformable_a to_o himself_o &_o that_o in_o all_o thing_n he_o never_o differ_v or_o disagree_v from_o himself_o whether_o he_o speak_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n as_o caluin_n acknowledge_v 2._o calu._n l._n 1._o instit_fw-la c._n 9_o sect_n 2._o dispute_v against_o the_o anabaptist_n and_o libertine_n who_o by_o such_o a_o argument_n go_v about_o to_o reject_v the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o wit_n lest_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v be_v make_v subject_n and_o inferior_a unto_o they_o 4._o the_o second_o argument_n be_v that_o christian_n may_v and_o aught_o to_o judge_v and_o examine_v all_o thing_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v therefore_o the_o spirit_n of_o every_o christian_n ought_v to_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o thing_n i_o answer_v that_o by_o the_o same_o argument_n the_o anabaptist_n &_o libertine_n 15._o 1._o cor._n v._n 15._o reject_v all_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o may_v only_o retain_v the_o spirit_n as_o witness_v caluin_n but_o bad_o for_o even_o as_o christian_n must_v discern_v and_o judge_v all_o thing_n so_o must_v 1._o calââ_n c._n 9_o citat_fw-la sect_n 1._o they_o also_o observe_v the_o rule_n and_o method_n in_o judge_v which_o the_o scripture_n do_v prescribe_v unto_o they_o and_o which_o himself_o appoint_v but_o this_o rule_n be_v not_o every_o one_o private_a spirit_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o it_o be_v altogether_o necessary_a that_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v most_o certain_a &_o free_a from_o all_o error_n as_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v and_o not_o that_o of_o every_o private_a man_n hereupon_o say_v s._n john_n he_o 6._o 1._o joan._n 4._o v._n 6._o which_o know_v god_n hear_v we_o he_o who_o be_v not_o of_o god_n do_v not_o hear_v we_o in_o this_o we_o know_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n we_o must_v therefore_o judge_v of_o every_o man_n by_o that_o they_o either_o hear_v or_o do_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n &c_n &c_n because_o they_o either_o agree_v or_o disagree_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n 5._o the_o three_o argument_n be_v that_o catholic_n prove_v the_o church_n and_o the_o authority_n thereof_o by_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o scripture_n be_v rather_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n than_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v take_v out_o of_o scripture_n when_o we_o dispute_v against_o heretic_n be_v a_o argument_n call_v by_o philosopher_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la and_o it_o be_v deduce_v out_o of_o the_o premise_n already_o grant_v in_o which_o manner_n also_o the_o first_o principle_n or_o ground_n of_o every_o science_n may_v be_v prove_v and_o out_o of_o those_o thing_n also_o which_o of_o themselves_o be_v not_o very_o strong_a and_o certain_a so_o out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n against_o the_o jew_n we_o prove_v the_o new_a testament_n albeit_o this_o also_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n because_o the_o jew_n do_v admit_v and_o receive_v the_o old_a testament_n but_o not_o the_o new_a yea_o also_o even_o out_o of_o the_o jewish_a talmud_n we_o prove_v many_o thing_n against_o the_o jew_n because_o they_o admit_v and_o approve_v it_o as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o yet_o their_o talmud_n be_v not_o the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n because_o this_o only_a be_v as_o i_o say_v a_o argument_n deduce_v out_o of_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o graâât_v unto_o us._n so_o in_o like_a manâer_n because_o almost_o all_o heretic_n admit_v the_o scripture_n and_o reject_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o when_o we_o dispute_v against_o they_o we_o prove_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o scripture_n as_o premise_n already_o grant_v by_o they_o but_o if_o we_o be_v to_o deal_v with_o infidel_n or_o other_o who_o do_v not_o admit_v the_o scripture_n than_o the_o say_v scripture_n be_v to_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o contrariwise_o for_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n far_o better_o and_o more_o common_o know_v that_o there_o 10._o infra_fw-la 18._o buius_fw-la con_fw-mi âr_n §._o 10._o be_v a_o church_n then_o that_o there_o be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o afterward_o we_o will_v show_v more_o clear_o 6._o second_o i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v so_o great_a connexion_n betwixt_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o church_n that_o the_o scripture_n may_v very_o well_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o again_o the_o church_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n neither_o shall_v this_o seem_v strange_a to_o our_o adversary_n for_o logician_n also_o know_v very_o well_o that_o that_o which_o by_o it_o own_o nature_n be_v more_o certain_a &_o better_o know_v may_v be_v prove_v by_o that_o which_o be_v more_o certain_a and_o better_o know_v unto_o we_o by_o a_o demonstration_n call_v by_o they_o à _fw-la posteriori_fw-la and_o contrary_a wise_a that_o which_o be_v better_o know_v unto_o we_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o that_o which_o be_v better_o know_v and_o more_o certain_a in_o his_o own_o nature_n by_o a_o demonstration_n call_v à _fw-la priori_fw-la so_o the_o cause_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o effect_n &_o the_o effect_n by_o the_o cause_n as_o fire_n be_v prove_v by_o heat_n à _fw-la posteriori_fw-la and_o heat_n by_o the_o nature_n of_o fire_n à _fw-la priori_fw-la so_o in_o like_a manner_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n the_o which_o in_o regard_n of_o we_o be_v more_o certain_a and_o better_o know_v we_o prove_v the_o scripture_n as_o it_o be_v à _fw-fr posteriori_fw-la and_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o in_o it_o own_o nature_n be_v more_o certain_a we_o prove_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v à _fw-fr priori_fw-la 7._o the_o four_o argument_n s._n paul_n testify_v that_o the_o church_n be_v support_v by_o the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o their_o prophetical_a and_o apostolical_a doctrine_n but_o if_o the_o foresay_a doctrine_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o church_n it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o this_o doctrive_v appear_v to_o
with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o general_a the_o which_o they_o shall_v not_o do_v for_o there_o be_v three_o sort_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o wit_n that_o which_o be_v believe_v preach_v and_o write_v the_o believe_v word_n be_v in_o the_o hart_n of_o the_o church_n that_o which_o be_v preach_v be_v in_o her_o mouth_n and_o that_o which_o be_v write_v be_v in_o her_o book_n of_o the_o believe_v and_o preach_v word_n the_o apostle_n say_v the_o word_n be_v in_o thy_o mouth_n and_o in_o thy_o hart_n this_o be_v the_o word_n of_o faith_n which_o we_o preach_v we_o 8._o rom._n 20._o v._n 8._o confess_v that_o in_o the_o believe_v and_o preach_v word_n the_o church_n be_v found_v because_o by_o the_o same_o it_o be_v engender_v nourish_v 14._o rom._n 10._o v._n 10._o ibid_fw-la v._o 14._o and_o govern_v and_o that_o unto_o this_o word_n it_o be_v subject_a and_o obedient_a as_o unto_o the_o word_n of_o her_o spouse_n for_o indeed_o this_o kind_n of_o word_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o church_n for_o with_o our_o hart_n say_v the_o apostle_n we_o believe_v unto_o justice_n but_o with_o the_o mouth_n confession_n be_v make_v to_o salvation_n and_o again_o how_o shall_v they_o hear_v without_o a_o preacher_n 2._o but_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o write_a word_n be_v far_o different_a for_o this_o be_v neither_o altogether_o necessary_a for_o the_o church_n see_v that_o the_o church_n be_v without_o it_o more_o than_o two_o thousand_o year_n neither_o can_v the_o write_a word_n be_v profitable_a to_o the_o church_n unless_o it_o be_v also_o right_o preach_v and_o believe_v for_o what_o do_v it_o profit_v a_o man_n to_o have_v the_o bible_n unless_o he_o right_o believe_v and_o understand_v it_o 3._o but_o the_o scripture_n whereof_o we_o now_o dispute_v do_v only_o contain_v the_o write_a word_n but_o the_o believe_v and_o preach_v word_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o visible_a church_n as_o the_o necessary_a and_o essential_a part_n thereof_o see_v the_o one_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o life_n in_o the_o hart_n of_o the_o church_n the_o other_o as_o it_o be_v the_o speech_n in_o her_o mouth_n neither_o can_v they_o ever_o be_v separate_v from_o she_o according_a to_o that_o say_n and_o promise_n of_o god_n the_o word_n which_o i_o have_v put_v in_o thy_o mouth_n shall_v not_o ult._n isa_n 59_o v._n ult._n depart_v from_o thy_o mouth_n nor_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n nor_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n seed_n from_o henceforth_o for_o evermore_o 4._o wherefore_o this_o argument_n do_v prove_v the_o quite_o contrary_a for_o see_v that_o the_o write_a word_n receive_v it_o profit_n and_o authority_n from_o the_o right_o believe_v and_o preach_v word_n which_o be_v the_o part_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o write_a word_n receive_v that_o authority_n and_o utility_n from_o the_o church_n as_o that_o wherein_o only_o the_o word_n right_o preach_v and_o believe_v be_v to_o be_v find_v 5._o the_o second_o argument_n if_o the_o church_n shall_v teach_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n we_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v the_o church_n therefore_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o receive_v that_o authority_n from_o the_o church_n but_o rather_o the_o church_n from_o the_o scripture_n i_o answer_v that_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o if_o the_o scripture_n shall_v contain_v any_o thing_n against_o truth_n we_o shall_v not_o also_o believe_v it_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v utter_v and_o speak_v any_o lie_n we_o shall_v not_o believe_v he_o but_o thâse_a condition_n be_v indeed_o impossible_a and_o blasphemous_a against_o god_n wherefore_o they_o be_v not_o only_o to_o be_v admit_v but_o not_o even_o to_o be_v propose_v of_o christian_n for_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o church_n shall_v teach_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n for_o then_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v lie_v because_o he_o shall_v teach_v one_o thing_n by_o the_o church_n and_o the_o contrary_a by_o the_o scripture_n 6._o the_o three_o argument_n if_o the_o scripture_n receive_v that_o authority_n from_o the_o church_n than_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v above_o the_o scripture_n which_o seem_v to_o be_v very_o absurd_a i_o answer_v that_o the_o church_n be_v above_o the_o scripture_n may_v be_v understand_v two_o way_n first_o because_o the_o church_n exceed_v the_o scripture_n in_o dignity_n and_o excellency_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n without_o all_o doubt_n the_o church_n be_v about_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o scripture_n be_v make_v for_o the_o church_n and_o not_o contrary_a wise_n all_o thing_n say_v the_o apostle_n 51._o 1._o cor._n 4._o v._n 51._o be_v do_v for_o you_o christ_n die_v for_o the_o church_n and_o not_o for_o the_o scripture_n the_o church_n believe_v hope_v love_v and_o praise_v god_n but_o the_o scripture_n do_v none_o of_o these_o the_o church_n shall_v reign_v and_o live_v everlasting_o with_o christ_n in_o heaven_n the_o scripture_n shall_v perish_v after_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n last_o the_o church_n contain_v in_o it_o the_o word_n of_o god_n right_o believe_v preach_v and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n itself_o all_o which_o do_v far_o exceed_v the_o write_a word_n in_o excellency_n and_o dignity_n 7._o second_o it_o may_v be_v understand_v that_o the_o church_n be_v above_o the_o scripture_n so_o as_o she_o may_v change_v the_o scripture_n or_o of_o scripture_n make_v no_o scripture_n or_o last_o she_o may_v teach_v some_o what_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n or_o depart_v from_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o which_o sense_n the_o sectary_n of_o this_o time_n say_v that_o we_o affirm_v the_o church_n to_o be_v above_o the_o scripture_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v false_a that_o the_o church_n be_v above_o the_o scripture_n but_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o catholic_a which_z in_o this_o sense_n will_v affirm_v that_o the_o argum_fw-la bellar._n l._n 3._o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la c._n ult._n in_o resp_n ad_fw-la 14._o argum_fw-la church_n be_v above_o the_o scripture_n as_o bellarmine_n true_o affirm_v for_o if_o the_o church_n be_v in_o this_o sense_n above_o the_o scripture_n the_o church_n shall_v err_v and_o be_v opposite_a unto_o her_o âelfe_n because_o in_o that_o the_o church_n have_v once_o approve_v the_o scripture_n she_o can_v any_o more_o reject_v and_o disprove_v it_o unless_o she_o contradict_v herself_o which_o be_v impossible_a 8._o the_o four_o argument_n the_o holy_a scripture_n receive_v her_o authority_n immediate_o from_o god_n himself_o because_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o it_o do_v not_o receive_v it_o authority_n from_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o certaynties_n the_o one_o of_o the_o thing_n in_o it_o own_o nature_n the_o other_o in_o respect_n of_o we_o so_o also_o there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o authoritye_n the_o one_o of_o the_o thing_n consider_v in_o itself_o and_o this_o have_v the_o scripture_n from_o her_o principal_a author_n to_o wit_n god_n himself_o the_o other_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o we_o and_o this_o it_o have_v from_o the_o church_n as_o we_o have_v 19_o cap_n 13._o praece_v §._o 17._o &_o 19_o prove_v before_o out_o of_o caluin_n and_o beza_n for_o we_o know_v not_o otherwise_o that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o scripture_n with_o any_o certainty_n of_o faith_n but_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n 9_o and_o that_o which_o we_o have_v say_v of_o the_o scripture_n may_v also_o be_v evident_o see_v in_o christ_n our_o lord_n who_o be_v above_o the_o scripture_n for_o christ_n be_v force_v to_o prove_v his_o authority_n by_o miracle_n that_o it_o may_v the_o better_o be_v know_v and_o allow_v of_o man_n for_o otherwise_o the_o jew_n have_v not_o be_v bind_v to_o have_v admit_v his_o authority_n joan._n joan._n 15._o v._n 14._o s._n aug._n tom._n 9_o tract_n 91._o in_o joan._n hereupon_o say_v christ_n speak_v unto_o his_o disciple_n of_o the_o jew_n if_o i_o have_v not_o do_v among_o they_o work_v that_o no_o other_o man_n have_v do_v they_o shall_v not_o have_v sin_v that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o infidelity_n not_o believe_v in_o christ_n aâ_n s._n augustine_n very_o well_o expound_v and_o in_o another_o place_n speak_v unto_o the_o jew_n 17._o joan._n 10._o v._n 17._o he_o say_v if_o i_o do_v not_o the_o work_n of_o my_o father_n believe_v i_o not_o 10._o but_o if_o the_o authority_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v most_o excellent_a in_o itself_o and_o immediate_o from_o god_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o those_o mean_n whereby_o it_o may_v become_v know_v unto_o we_o to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v it_o much_o more_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n will_v stand_v in_o need_n
publican_n 18._o five_o the_o church_n have_v power_n and_o authority_n to_o punish_v what_o will_v you_o 10._o 1._o cor._n 4._o v._o ult._n 2._o cor._n ult._n v._n 2._o 2._o cor._n ult._n v_o 10._o say_v the_o apostle_n that_o i_o come_v unto_o you_o with_o a_o rod_n or_o in_o charity_n and_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o mildness_n and_o in_o another_o place_n if_o i_o come_v again_o i_o will_v not_o spare_v and_o again_o that_o be_v present_a i_o may_v not_o deal_v hardly_o according_a to_o the_o power_n which_o our_o lord_n have_v give_v i_o unto_o edification_n and_o not_o unto_o destruction_n 19_o six_o the_o church_n absolu_v bind_v and_o retain_v sin_n excommunicate_v 23._o matth._n 18._o v._n 19_o joan._n 20._o v._n 23._o as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v express_o testify_v and_o our_o adversary_n do_v also_o confess_v all_o which_o act_n belong_v unto_o judge_n but_o the_o scripture_n do_v none_o of_o they_o 20._o the_o second_o argument_n the_o holy_a scripture_n express_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n do_v sometime_o judge_v i_o indeed_o absent_a in_o body_n but_o present_a in_o spirit_n have_v 5._o 1._o cor._n 5._o v._n 34._o &_o 5._o already_o judge_v as_o present_v he_o that_o have_v so_o do_v in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n you_o be_v gather_v together_o and_o my_o spirit_n with_o the_o virtue_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o deliver_v such_o a_o one_o to_o satan_n and_o a_o little_a after_o do_v not_o you_o judge_v of_o they_o that_o be_v within_o where_o the_o apostle_n 12._o â_o cor._n 5._o v._n 12._o plain_o say_v that_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n judge_v those_o which_o be_v in_o the_o church_n 21._o the_o three_o argument_n be_v take_v from_o the_o common_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n aswell_o in_o the_o old_a as_o in_o the_o new_a 11._o num._n 11._o â_o 16._o 17._o &_o 25._o deut._n 17._o â_o 8._o &_o âeq_fw-la 2._o par._n 19_o v._o â0_n &_o 11._o testament_n for_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o chief_a judgement_n of_o all_o cause_n be_v ordain_v by_o god_n himself_o first_o in_o the_o book_n of_o number_n and_o afterward_o it_o be_v confirm_v in_o deuteronomy_n in_o which_o judgement_n the_o priest_n do_v sit_v as_o judge_n and_o the_o chief_a judge_n who_o do_v give_v his_o sentence_n for_o in_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v doubtful_a by_o the_o express_a commandment_n of_o god_n the_o common_a people_n be_v send_v to_o this_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o only_o to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o to_o the_o private_a spirit_n of_o any_o 22._o moreover_o till_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n this_o manner_n of_o judge_v continue_v in_o the_o old_a law_n for_o of_o it_o christ_n himself_o say_v upon_o the_o chair_n of_o moses_n have_v sit_v the_o sâribes_n and_o the_o pharisy_n all_o thing_n therefore_o whatsoever_o they_o shall_v say_v to_o you_o observe_v yâe_n and_o do_v you_o this_o council_n or_o judgement_n in_o the_o year_n follow_v by_o corrupt_v the_o greek_a word_n the_o jew_n call_v sanhedrin_n 3_o matt._n 2._o v._n 2._o &_o 3_o as_o it_o be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o assembly_n or_o council_n 13._o in_o like_a manner_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n when_o there_o arise_v that_o controversy_n about_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o legal_a ceremony_n or_o custom_n the_o apostle_n do_v not_o 28._o act._n 15._o v._n 28._o send_v their_o disciple_n to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n only_o or_o to_o the_o private_a spirit_n of_o any_o but_o they_o assemble_v themselves_o together_o and_o define_v what_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v it_o seem_v good_a say_v they_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o us._n for_o 4._o act._n 15._o v._o ult._n &_o act._n 16._o v._n 4._o the_o holy_a âhost_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o soul_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o decree_n of_o the_o apostle_n s_o paul_n and_o s._n barnabas_n do_v diwlge_v and_o promulgate_v every_o where_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o same_o chapter_n and_o the_o next_o follow_v where_o these_o determination_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v call_v decree_n or_o according_a 25._o act._n 21._o v._n 25._o to_o the_o greek_a phrase_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d that_o be_v to_o sây_v thing_n already_o judge_v whereupon_o act._n 21._o vers_fw-la 25._o the_o apostle_n do_v say_v that_o judge_v and_o decree_a they_o have_v write_v this_o 24._o in_o the_o same_o manner_n in_o the_o next_o age_n the_o arian_n the_o macedonian_n the_o nestorian_n eutichian_o and_o other_o old_a heretic_n be_v judge_v &_o condemn_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o general_a counsel_n hold_v at_o nice_a constantinople_n chalcedon_n and_o other_o 25._o last_o our_o adversary_n in_o their_o consistory_n and_o assembly_n do_v usurp_v unto_o themselves_o the_o authority_n of_o judge_n neither_o do_v they_o refer_v the_o judgement_n to_o the_o scripture_n alone_o or_o to_o the_o private_a spirit_n of_o any_o 26._o yea_o caluin_n convince_v by_o these_o reason_n confess_v that_o the_o write_n of_o every_o private_a person_n must_v be_v submit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n where_o he_o also_o conclude_v thus_o neither_o therefore_o say_v he_o do_v we_o condemn_v or_o diminish_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o do_v we_o give_v liberty_n âo_o every_o froward_a fine_a calu._n in_o antid_v contra_fw-la conâil_n trid._n sess_v 1._o in_o fine_a fellow_n to_o do_v what_o he_o listen_v i_o will_v to_o god_n they_o will_v show_v we_o such_o a_o church_n as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v paint_v or_o describe_v unto_o we_o we_o will_v easy_o agree_v about_o the_o honour_n thereof_o thus_o he_o but_o we_o will_v show_v in_o the_o ensue_a chapter_n such_o a_o church_n as_o the_o scripture_n describe_v i_o wish_v also_o we_o may_v agree_v concern_v the_o honour_n and_o authority_n thereof_o 27._o there_o be_v two_o principal_a argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n the_o first_o be_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o tie_v unto_o man_n but_o âudgeth_v free_o in_o whatsoever_o it_o please_v he_o therefore_o he_o be_v not_o tie_v unto_o the_o church_n but_o the_o same_o argument_n will_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v no_o certainty_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o they_o who_o write_v the_o scripture_n be_v man_n unto_o who_o according_a to_o our_o adversary_n opinion_n the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o tie_v i_o answer_v therefore_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o absolute_o bind_v or_o tie_v unto_o man_n but_o he_o be_v tie_v to_o his_o own_o promise_n as_o also_o to_o the_o word_n and_o promise_n of_o christ_n for_o neither_o the_o holy_a ghost_n nor_o christ_n himself_o can_v deceive_v we_o in_o not_o perform_v their_o promise_n because_o as_o the_o apostle_n 2._o tit._n 1._o v._n 2._o say_v god_n can_v lie_v but_o god_n have_v promise_v that_o he_o will_v be_v with_o his_o church_n not_o only_o one_o or_o two_o day_n or_o one_o year_n but_o even_o till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n he_o promise_v that_o he_o will_v give_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o remain_v ult._n math._n vit_fw-mi v._o ult._n and_o stay_v with_o we_o not_o for_o one_o or_o two_o year_n only_o but_o everlasting_o it_o be_v needful_a therefore_o that_o he_o perform_v and_o stand_v to_o his_o promise_n 28._o the_o second_o argument_n if_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v say_v of_o the_o church_n as_o judge_n be_v true_a it_o will_v also_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n be_v judge_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o consequent_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o general_n i_o answer_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o general_n can_v be_v call_v in_o question_n or_o doubt_v of_o by_o any_o which_o profess_v christ_n for_o the_o divine_a faith_n can_v be_v without_o some_o word_n of_o god_n but_o where_o there_o be_v no_o controversy_n there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o any_o judge_n but_o if_o of_o any_o one_o part_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n whether_o it_o be_v write_v or_o not_o write_v there_o arise_v any_o controversy_n as_o for_o example_n of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o write_a word_n without_o doubt_n we_o must_v recurre_v unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n for_o it_o belong_v unto_o she_o to_o judge_v of_o the_o truesense_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o of_o the_o exposition_n thereof_o which_o be_v the_o chief_a 16._o joan._n 14._o v._n 16._o part_n of_o the_o write_a word_n as_o also_o of_o any_o doubtful_a letter_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o see_v that_o in_o time_n past_a there_o have_v be_v many_o controversye_n of_o diverse_a book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o of_o the_o particular_a chapter_n and_o part_n thereof_o as_o also_o of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o letter_n and_o other_o
a_o summary_n of_o controversy_n wherein_o be_v brief_o treat_v the_o chief_a question_n of_o divinity_n now_o a_o day_n in_o dispute_n between_o catholic_n &_o protestant_n especial_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n write_a in_o latin_n by_o the_o r._n father_n james_n gordon_n huntley_n of_o scotland_n doctor_n of_o divinity_n of_o the_o society_n of_o jesus_n and_o translate_v into_o english_a by_o i._n l._n of_o the_o same_o society_n the_o i._o tome_n divide_v into_o two_o controversy_n the_o second_o edition_n ihs_n permissu_fw-la superiorum_fw-la m._n dc_o xviii_o the_o content_n of_o the_o ensve_a controversy_n controver_n i._o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o first_o controversy_n treat_v of_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n of_o the_o scope_n and_o method_n of_o this_o treatise_n chap._n 1._o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o general_n chap._n 2._o of_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n chap._n 3._o how_o we_o be_v to_o seek_v out_o the_o true_a sense_n &_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n chap._n 4._o how_o we_o may_v know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a letter_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n chap._n 5._o of_o the_o hebrew_n text._n chap._n 6._o of_o our_o adversary_n new_a translation_n of_o the_o bible_n chap._n 7._o of_o the_o latin_a vulgar_a edition_n chap._n 8._o the_o place_n of_o genesis_n she_o shall_v break_v thy_o âhead_n be_v show_v to_o be_v well_o translate_v chap._n 9_o of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o these_o word_n ipsa_fw-la conteret_fw-la etc._n etc._n chap._n 10._o that_o the_o write_a word_n be_v no_o fit_a judge_n of_o controversy_n concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n chap._n 11._o whether_o the_o scripture_n be_v obscure_a or_o hard_a to_o be_v understand_v chap._n 12._o whether_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v to_o be_v translate_v into_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n chap._n 13._o that_o our_o adversary_n use_v many_o sleight_n in_o corrupt_v the_o word_n of_o god_n chap._n 14._o the_o four_o five_o and_o sixth_o shift_n that_o our_o adversary_n use_n in_o deprave_v the_o word_n of_o god_n chap._n 15._o of_o the_o seven_o and_o eight_o shift_n chap._n 16._o of_o the_o nine_o and_o ten_o shift_n chap._n 17._o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o first_o controversy_n handle_v the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n common_o call_v tradition_n of_o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o question_n chap._n 1._o out_o of_o the_o first_o and_o chief_a principle_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v clear_o convince_v that_o three_o be_v tradition_n chap._n 2._o it_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o other_o particular_a point_n of_o say_v that_o there_o be_v tradition_n chap._n 3_o whether_o there_o be_v any_o point_n of_o say_v to_o be_v allege_v which_o be_v not_o where_o extant_a in_o the_o bible_n chap._n 4._o it_o be_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v tradition_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n chap._n 5._o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o adversary_n it_o be_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v tradition_n chap._n 6._o it_o be_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v tradition_n by_o the_o absurdity_n which_o otherwise_o will_v follow_v chap._n 7._o the_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n take_v out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v confute_v chap._n 8._o that_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n epistle_n to_o the_o galathians_n the_o which_o our_o adversary_n do_v object_n against_o tradition_n be_v examine_v chap._n 9_o other_o objection_n of_o our_o adversary_n against_o tradition_n be_v refute_v chap._n 10._o it_o be_v declare_v how_o we_o may_v know_v the_o apostolical_a tradition_n chap._n 11._o controver_n ii_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o second_o controversy_n treat_v of_o the_o property_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o property_n and_o office_n of_o the_o true_a church_n in_o general_n chap._n 1._o that_o out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n chap._n 2._o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o continue_v for_o ever_o chap._n 3._o that_o this_o church_n which_o have_v always_o continue_v have_v always_o be_v visible_a chap._n 4._o the_o argument_n against_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v confute_v chap._n 5._o other_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n against_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v confute_v chap._n 6._o that_o this_o visible_a true_a church_n of_o christ_n can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o say_v chap._n 7._o that_o there_o be_v no_o lawful_a call_n of_o preacher_n or_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n but_o by_o the_o visible_a church_n chap._n 8._o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o second_o controversy_n treat_v of_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n whether_o the_o church_n be_v the_o foundation_n and_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o true_a state_n of_o this_o question_n chap._n 1._o the_o property_n of_o the_o ground_n and_o rule_v of_o our_o say_v be_v allege_v chap._n 2._o that_o the_o scripture_n alone_o be_v not_o the_o ground_n or_o rule_v of_o say_v chap._n 3._o that_o the_o private_a or_o particular_a spirit_n of_o every_o one_o be_v not_o the_o ground_n or_o rule_v of_o say_v chap._n 4._o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v the_o ground_n or_o rule_v of_o our_o faith_n chap._n 5._o the_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v confute_v chap._n 6._o that_o the_o church_n do_v not_o only_o give_v a_o bare_a testimony_n but_o also_o authority_n to_o the_o scripture_n chap._n 7._o the_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v confute_v chap._n 8._o that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n chap._n 9_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o second_o controversy_n treat_v of_o the_o true_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o false_a and_o true_a sign_n or_o mark_v of_o the_o church_n in_o general_n chap._n 1._o that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v one_o holy_a catholic_a &_o apostolic_a chap._n 2._o that_o the_o roman_a church_n only_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o property_n of_o the_o true_a church_n chap._n 3._o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o office_n of_o true_a church_n ch._n 4._o by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a church_n it_o be_v declare_v that_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n cap._n 5._o that_o the_o church_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o chief_a of_o all_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v clear_o convince_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n chap._n 6._o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o chief_a and_o head_n of_o all_o other_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o even_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o chap._n 7._o the_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v confute_v chap._n 8._o of_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o of_o the_o kiss_n of_o his_o foot_n chap._n 9_o of_o general_n counsel_n chap._n 10._o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_a holy_a father_n chap._n 11._o the_o first_o controversy_n of_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god._n the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o first_o controversy_n chap._n i._o of_o the_o scope_n and_o method_n of_o this_o treatise_n all_o the_o controversye_n of_o this_o time_n may_v be_v reduce_v to_o two_o head_n for_o either_o they_o be_v certain_a general_a principle_n &_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o religion_n or_o they_o be_v particular_a question_n appertain_v to_o the_o same_o among_o other_o general_a principle_n there_o be_v two_o about_o which_o be_v the_o great_a contention_n at_o this_o day_n the_o one_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o other_o the_o church_n we_o will_v first_o speak_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o afterwards_o of_o the_o church_n and_o last_o we_o will_v examine_v every_o particular_a controversy_n if_o god_n shall_v grant_v we_o life_n and_o health_n 2._o two_o thing_n do_v now_o adays_o hold_v many_o in_o error_n the_o one_o be_v a_o false_a opinion_n that_o many_o have_v who_o think_v it_o a_o matter_n of_o little_a importance_n whether_o they_o give_v credit_n or_o no_o to_o many_o thing_n teach_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o dangerous_a persuasion_n may_v be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o mind_n of_o all_o faithful_a people_n by_o that_o which_o we_o shall_v deliver_v concern_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o church_n for_o thereby_o it_o shall_v evident_o appear_v that_o all_o thing_n be_v firm_o to_o be_v believe_v which_o the_o roman_a church_n believe_v and_o that_o without_o this_o faith_n no_o man_n can_v hope_v to_o be_v save_v the_o other_o be_v that_o such_o as_o desire_v to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a faith_n in_o every_o particular_a controversy_n be_v oftentimes_o so_o hinder_v by_o the_o sleight_n and_o falsehood_n of_o our_o adversary_n as_o it_o will_v
version_n to_o make_v they_o speak_v in_o favour_n of_o their_o error_n which_o they_o can_v do_v if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o old_a trident._n calu._n in_o antid_v conâ_n 4._o sess_v conc._n trident._n interpreter_n continue_v in_o all_o thing_n entire_a and_o undiminish_v as_o for_o caluin_n he_o be_v so_o deadly_a a_o enemy_n to_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n that_o with_o great_a excess_n he_o declaim_v against_o it_o in_o this_o manner_n so_o far_o off_o be_v it_o say_v he_o that_o there_o be_v one_o entire_a lease_n as_o there_o be_v sâarse_fw-mi three_o verse_n together_o not_o defile_v with_o some_o notable_a error_n but_o to_o prove_v this_o his_o impudent_a assertion_n he_o bring_v only_o one_o place_n out_o of_o the_o now_o testament_n which_o a_o little_a after_o we_o will_v show_v to_o have_v be_v exceed_o well_o translate_v out_o of_o the_o greek_a he_o bring_v no_o other_o place_n out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n than_o such_o as_o he_o take_v out_o of_o the_o psalm_n which_o as_o it_o be_v evident_a be_v translate_v word_n for_o word_n out_o of_o the_o greek_a version_n of_o the_o septuagint_n interpreter_n nay_o in_o the_o same_o place_n caluin_n acknowledge_v that_o the_o latin_a interpreter_n have_v with_o all_o possible_a diligence_n express_v the_o greek_a translation_n and_o as_o for_o the_o greek_a interpretation_n of_o the_o septuagint_n it_o be_v most_o learned_o defend_v by_o genebraâd_n so_o as_o it_o psal_n geneb_n in_o psal_n superfluous_a to_o say_v any_o more_o indeed_o caluin_n &_o luther_n disciple_n find_v fault_n with_o many_o other_o place_n in_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n both_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n but_o we_o will_v lay_v four_o general_a ground_n out_o of_o which_o all_o their_o argument_n may_v be_v easy_o answer_v 2._o the_o first_o be_v if_o our_o aduersaire_n will_v needs_o have_v the_o now_o present_a roman_a church_n condemn_v for_o follow_v and_o authorise_v the_o vulgar_a latin_a interpretation_n they_o must_v needs_o also_o condemn_v the_o whole_a ancient_a church_n and_o all_o the_o father_n who_o live_v the_o first_o some_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n for_o they_o acknowledge_v no_o other_o interpretation_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o authentical_a then_o that_o of_o the_o septuagint_n interpreter_n which_o much_o more_o depart_v from_o the_o hebrew_n text_n now_o extant_a than_o our_o vulgar_a latin_a as_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o confess_v wherefore_o if_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v to_o be_v condemn_v for_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n much_o more_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o the_o version_n of_o the_o septuagint_n and_o hereof_o it_o follow_v further_o that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v which_o follow_v a_o translation_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o in_o some_o thing_n may_v be_v amend_v so_o long_o as_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o it_o which_o be_v repugnant_a either_o to_o faith_n or_o good_a manner_n for_o otherwise_o the_o ancient_a church_n have_v err_v in_o retain_v the_o version_n of_o the_o septuagint_n which_o be_v corrupt_v in_o some_o place_n but_o those_o corruption_n be_v not_o in_o 12._o calu._n l._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 1._o sect_n 12._o any_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v moreover_o calf_n himself_o confess_v that_o we_o must_v not_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n for_o error_n of_o little_a importance_n the_o ignorance_n whereof_o neither_o do_v violate_v religion_n nor_o prejudice_n our_o salvation_n wherefore_o albeit_o there_o shall_v be_v some_o such_o error_n in_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n yet_o be_v not_o dam._n rom._n 1_o v._o â_o ãâã_d epist_n 57_o ad_fw-la dam._n the_o roman_a church_n which_o be_v so_o ancient_a &_o so_o high_o commend_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o speak_v s._n jerome_n to_o be_v condemn_v or_o forsake_v and_o this_o may_v serve_v for_o answer_v to_o our_o adversary_n argument_n when_o they_o object_v certain_a light_a fault_n of_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n which_o have_v creep_v into_o it_o either_o by_o the_o negligence_n of_o the_o printer_n or_o by_o any_o other_o accident_n as_o also_o what_o our_o adversary_n object_n against_o the_o psalter_n may_v hereby_o be_v convince_v to_o be_v very_o weak_a for_o see_v that_o no_o other_o version_n be_v follow_v in_o it_o than_o that_o ancient_a version_n of_o the_o septuagint_n they_o can_v condemn_v we_o unless_o they_o will_v condemn_v the_o whole_a primitive_a church_n together_o with_o we_o yea_o the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n themselves_o who_o follow_v the_o same_o version_n be_v as_o show_v in_o the_o 11._o chapter_n of_o the_o latin_a edition_n of_o this_o controversy_n 3._o the_o second_o ground_n a_o good_a interpreter_n do_v not_o tie_v himself_o to_o translate_v word_n for_o word_n see_v that_o every_o tongue_n have_v his_o proper_a phrase_n and_o manner_n of_o speech_n but_o content_v himself_o to_o express_v the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o that_o which_o he_o translate_v wherefore_o all_o our_o adversary_n argument_n be_v nothing_o worth_a by_o which_o they_o prove_v that_o certain_a place_n of_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n be_v somewhat_o otherwise_o in_o the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a so_o that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o whole_a period_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o as_o most_o of_o the_o place_n be_v which_o they_o carp_n ââ_o in_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n 4._o the_o three_o ground_n the_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n some_o be_v clear_a &_o manifest_a as_o almost_o all_o be_v which_o set_v down_o the_o history_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n other_o be_v obscure_a and_o full_a of_o difficulty_n as_o be_v many_o place_n in_o the_o psalm_n and_o prophet_n now_o if_o the_o interpreter_n in_o such_o place_n as_o be_v evident_a and_o manifest_a do_v interpret_v right_o all_o of_o they_o and_o in_o such_o place_n of_o scripture_n as_o be_v obscure_a express_v a_o sense_n and_o meaning_n agreeable_a to_o the_o letter_n though_o he_o come_v short_a of_o the_o best_a sense_n and_o that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o better_o give_v he_o be_v not_o therefore_o to_o be_v think_v to_o have_v err_v or_o not_o to_o have_v fulfil_v the_o office_n of_o a_o good_a interpreter_n for_o so_o plentiful_a and_o profound_a be_v the_o sense_n oâ_n holy_a scripture_n especial_o in_o such_o place_n as_o be_v obscure_a as_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a for_o any_o mââ_n to_o judge_v which_o be_v the_o best_a sense_n nay_o if_o we_o must_v interpret_v a_o new_a until_o we_o have_v âound_v out_o the_o best_a sense_n there_o will_v never_o be_v a_o end_n of_o interpret_n but_o we_o must_v every_o year_n set_v forth_o a_o new_a interpretation_n or_o at_o least_o correct_v and_o amend_v the_o former_a as_o our_o adversary_n have_v do_v and_o beza_n by_o name_n who_o have_v set_v out_o five_o diverse_a edition_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n 1593._o beza_n in_o eââst_n aâ_n lâât_n ante_fw-la deti_fw-la ââ_o 1593._o every_o one_o much_o differ_v from_o the_o other_o as_o himâelfe_n free_o confess_v yet_o he_o plain_o acknowledge_v that_o in_o his_o first_o edition_n he_o âath_v neither_o satisfy_v either_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o work_n or_o his_o own_o desire_n out_o of_o which_o ground_n we_o answer_v to_o that_o which_o our_o adversary_n object_n to_o wit_n that_o there_o be_v many_o place_n of_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n which_o may_v much_o better_a and_o much_o more_o clear_o have_v be_v translate_v for_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o they_o be_v well_o and_o right_o translate_v 5._o the_o four_o ground_n we_o be_v not_o to_o reprehend_v the_o translation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n only_o because_o they_o differ_v one_o from_o another_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v not_o contrary_a the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o and_o in_o this_o the_o holy_a scripture_n differ_v from_o other_o profane_a writing_n for_o even_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o diverse_a place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v thing_n different_a but_o not_o repugnant_a so_o the_o same_o holy_a ghost_n can_v in_o one_o place_n &_o in_o the_o same_o word_n teach_v diverse_a thing_n and_o heerhence_o it_o be_v that_o s._n thomas_n teach_v ult._n 1._o p._n q._n 1._o art_n ult._n well_o as_o do_v s._n augustine_n before_o he_o that_o of_o one_o &_o the_o same_o place_n of_o scripture_n there_o may_v be_v many_o literal_a sense_n for_o where_o as_o the_o literal_a sense_n be_v that_o which_o the_o author_n intend_v and_o the_o proper_a and_o chief_a author_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v god_n himself_o who_o intention_n and_o meaning_n be_v not_o tie_v to_o one_o verity_n only_o as_o be_v man_n understanding_n but_o he_o in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o moment_n comprehend_v all_o thing_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o in_o the_o same_o word_n and_o at_o the_o same_o
32._o christ_n have_v but_o one_o spouse_n and_o acknowledge_v no_o other_o they_o shall_v be_v two_o in_o one_o flesh_n but_o i_o say_v the_o apostle_n speak_v in_o christ_n &_o in_o the_o church_n so_o also_o christ_n speak_v of_o the_o church_n my_o dove_n and_o my_o persect_n be_v one_o 8._o cant._n 6._o v._n 8._o christ_n be_v not_o a_o adulterer_n neither_o do_v he_o beget_v any_o child_n of_o a_o adulteress_n for_o this_o cause_n say_v s._n cyprian_n the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v a_o adulteress_n âhe_n be_v not_o corrupt_v eâcles_n s._n cypâ_n in_o traââ_n de_fw-la unit_fw-la eâcles_n and_o she_o be_v chaste_a and_o a_o little_a after_o whosoever_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n be_v join_v to_o a_o adulteress_n he_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o shall_v he_o ever_o attain_v to_o the_o reward_n ult._n s._n aug._n tom._n 9_o de_o âymh_o ad_fw-la caâh_n lib._n 4._o c_o ult._n of_o christ_n who_o tear_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n he_o be_v a_o alâene_n he_o be_v profane_a he_o be_v a_o enemy_n he_o can_v have_v god_n for_o his_o father_n who_o have_v not_o the_o church_n for_o his_o mother_n thus_o he_o which_o last_o word_n s._n augustin_n repeat_v out_o of_o he_o 2._o second_o he_o that_o be_v without_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n can_v receyve_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n nor_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o life_n and_o oan_n rom._n 8._o v._n 9_o s._n aug._n tom._n 29._o tract_n 2._o in_o oan_n merit_n of_o christ_n but_o he_o who_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o he_o as_o witness_v the_o apostle_n s._n augustine_n declare_v this_o very_a well_o by_o the_o example_n of_o a_o man_n body_n who_o member_n can_v live_v unless_o they_o be_v join_v to_o the_o body_n another_o reason_n also_o s._n augustine_n allege_v take_v from_o the_o foresaid_a property_n of_o the_o church_n none_o say_v he_o obtain_v salvation_n &_o everlasting_a lyse_v but_o he_o who_o 19_o s._n aug_n tom._n 7._o de_fw-la unit_fw-la ecc._n c._n 19_o hatâ_n christ_n to_o be_v his_o head_n but_o none_o can_v have_v christ_n to_o be_v his_o head_n but_o he_o who_o be_v in_o âis_n body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n so_o say_v s._n augustine_n 4._o three_o the_o name_n only_o of_o a_o mother_n do_v prove_v this_o sufficient_o for_o none_o can_v be_v conceyve_v nor_o bear_v without_o a_o mother_n and_o the_o child_n which_o be_v bear_v if_o it_o leave_v to_o suck_v the_o mother_n breast_n will_v perish_v for_o hunger_n by_o which_o argument_n even_o our_o wise_a adversary_n be_v convince_v for_o both_o caluinând_n ând_z beza_n do_v confess_v 1._o calu._n l._n 4._o nstit_fw-la c_o 1._o &_o beza_n cap._n 5._o confess_v art_n 1._o this_o that_o even_o the_o name_n only_o of_o a_o mother_n do_v convince_v that_o which_o we_o have_v say_v to_o be_v true_a yea_o also_o the_o scripture_n do_v often_o testify_v that_o out_o of_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n we_o can_v hope_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n nor_o everlasting_a salvation_n and_o that_o the_o go_v out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v always_o hateful_a and_o hence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o in_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n first_o we_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n and_o then_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o life_n everlasting_a because_o indeed_o without_o this_o church_n none_o can_v obtain_v either_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n or_o life_n everlasting_a chap._n iii_o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o continue_v for_o ever_o the_o second_o error_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v that_o many_o of_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v not_o continual_o endure_v but_o that_o it_o sometime_o fail_v this_o error_n may_v also_o be_v easy_o refute_v by_o the_o foresaid_a propertye_n &_o office_n of_o the_o church_n for_o first_o the_o church_n be_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n of_o which_o he_o speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n i_o will_v betrothe_v thou_o unto_o i_o for_o ever_o christ_n therefore_o do_v not_o betrothe_v his_o church_n unto_o he_o 19_o ose_n 2._o v._n 19_o for_o a_o few_o year_n only_o 2._o second_o the_o church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o christ_n can_v be_v without_o his_o 5._o rom._n 12._o v._n 5._o body_n and_o true_o it_o be_v a_o monstrous_a thing_n to_o see_v a_o live_a head_n without_o a_o body_n 3._o three_o the_o church_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o scripture_n do_v teach_v in_o many_o place_n that_o this_o kingdom_n 36._o psaâ_n 83._o ve_fw-la 89._o v._n 36._o of_o christ_n shall_v continue_v for_o ever_o as_o micheae_n 4._o v._o 7._o daniel_n 2._o v._n 44._o jerem._n 33._o v._o 20._o &_o 21._o luc._n 1._o 32._o &_o 33._o last_o christ_n swear_v in_o his_o holy_a one_o that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o his_o holiness_n that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n shall_v last_v for_o ever_o wherefore_o they_o endeavour_v to_o make_v christ_n himself_o perjure_a who_o affirm_v that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n sometime_o perish_v 4._o four_o the_o church_n be_v the_o house_n 18._o matt._n 17._o v._n 18._o of_o christ_n the_o which_o he_o build_v upon_o a_o rock_n and_o against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v 5._o five_o the_o same_o be_v prove_v be_v the_o 26._o 1._o cor._n 11._o v._n 26._o office_n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n shall_v show_v the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n until_o he_o come_v god_n also_o give_v some_o as_o apostle_n and_o doctor_n who_o shall_v 11._o ephes_n 4._o v._n 11._o teach_v and_o rule_v the_o church_n until_o we_o meet_v all_o in_o christ_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n when_o christ_n also_o send_v his_o disciple_n to_o teach_v all_o nation_n and_o to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n he_o add_v this_o promise_n behold_v i_o be_o with_o ult._n matt._n ult._n v._o ult._n you_o all_o day_n even_o to_o the_o consummation_n of_o the_o world_n by_o which_o word_n as_o s._n hierome_n well_o note_v he_o show_v that_o they_o be_v to_o live_v always_o and_o that_o he_o be_v never_o depart_v from_o the_o faithful_a believer_n 6._o last_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o be_v conviuce_v with_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o matter_n do_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o holy_a fine_a calu._n lib._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 1._o sect_n 17._o in_o fine_a scripture_n do_v testify_v this_o in_o many_o place_n for_o caluin_n and_o beza_n to_o omit_v many_o other_o do_v acknowledge_v and_o prove_v this_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n see_v that_o say_v beza_n the_o kingdom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v continual_a it_o 1._o beza_n c._n 5._o confess_v art_n 1._o necessary_o follow_v that_o there_o have_v always_o be_v some_o to_o be_v find_v who_o do_v acknowledge_v he_o for_o their_o king_n chap._n four_o that_o this_o church_n which_o have_v always_o continue_v have_v always_o be_v visible_a the_o three_o error_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v that_o they_o deny_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n to_o have_v be_v always_o visible_a for_o see_v that_o they_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v always_o continue_v as_o we_o have_v declare_v in_o in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n and_o when_o we_o demand_v of_o they_o where_o their_o church_n be_v for_o the_o space_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o more_o they_o fly_v unto_o a_o certain_a invisible_a church_n which_o they_o say_v lay_v hide_v for_o many_o year_n but_o this_o error_n also_o be_v easy_o refute_v by_o the_o for_o say_v property_n and_o office_n of_o the_o true_a church_n 2._o for_o first_o the_o church_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o this_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v visible_a 27._o 1._o cor._n 1â_n vers_fw-la 27._o for_o the_o apostle_n speak_v unto_o visible_a man_n when_o he_o say_v you_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n moreover_o we_o be_v make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n by_o baptism_n and_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o eucharist_n 12._o 1._o cor._n 10._o v._n 17._o &_o 1_o cor._n 12._o v._n 13._o ephes_n 4._o v._n 11._o 12._o as_o witness_v the_o apostle_n but_o these_o sacrament_n be_v visible_a also_o in_o this_o body_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v doctor_n and_o pastor_n until_o the_o consummation_n of_o saint_n until_o we_o meet_v with_o christ_n but_o such_o person_n be_v also_o visible_a the_o building_n also_o of_o the_o church_n be_v visible_a this_o consummation_n of_o saint_n be_v visible_a that_o work_n of_o ministry_n be_v visible_a which_o the_o apostle_n say_v shall_v continue_v until_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n 2._o second_o the_o church_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n but_o every_o kingdom_n comprehend_v in_o it_o a_o visible_a company_n of_o man_n who_o all_o acknowledge_v one_o
amos_n and_o micheas_n moreover_o in_o the_o time_n of_o jeremy_n there_o live_v âhe_v good_a king_n josias_n and_o the_o good_a prophet_n ezechiel_n daniel_n and_o sophonias_n therefore_o those_o thing_n which_o isay_n and_o hiereây_n do_v say_v can_v be_v understand_v of_o all_o universal_o 5._o the_o other_o place_n which_o our_o adversary_n incentium_fw-la s._n aug._n tom._n 2._o epist_n 48._o ad_fw-la five_o incentium_fw-la allege_v do_v prove_v that_o there_o aââ_n at_o sometime_o but_o a_o few_o in_o the_o church_n â_o but_o they_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o the_o sayâ_n church_n be_v invisible_a yea_o as_o s._n augâstine_n dispute_v against_o the_o donatist_n weâ_n observe_v when_o the_o church_n of_o god_n â_o most_o vex_v with_o the_o persecution_n of_o thâ_n wicked_a and_o seem_v to_o be_v almost_o oppress_v see_v therewith_o then_o be_v she_o most_o divine_a iâ_n such_o her_o member_n as_o be_v renew_v for_o courage_n and_o constancy_n for_o faith_n and_o obedience_n â8_o mat._n 1._o v._o â8_o towards_o god_n be_v more_o eminent_a iâ_n one_o noë_n or_o abraham_n then_o in_o ten_o thousand_o other_o 6._o last_o this_o our_o disputation_n be_v not_o proper_o of_o the_o ancient_a church_n which_o wâ_n 2._o eusebius_n in_o cron._n orosiââ_n in_o hist_o genâb_n in_o sva_fw-la cono._n sand._n the_o visib_n monar_n ch_z l._n 7._o in_o prin_fw-mi cocâiuâ_n tom._n 1._o lib_n 8._o art_n 2._o before_o christ_n time_n but_o of_o that_o whiâ_n ensue_v the_o promulgation_n of_o the_o gospel_n till_o this_o our_o present_a age_n whereof_o chriâ_n say_v upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n â_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o fâ_n albeit_o the_o church_n have_v be_v always_o visible_a even_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o worâ_n till_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n as_o paulus_n orosiâ_n &_o eusâbius_n have_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o every_o age_n declare_v in_o this_o our_o age_n alâ_n genebrard_n sanders_n and_o coccius_n have_v brief_n demonstrate_v the_o same_o yet_o notwithstanding_o before_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n tâ_n whole_a church_n of_o god_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n ult._n psal_n 75._o v._n 2._o &_o psal_n 147._o v._n ult._n conclude_v into_o great_a strait_n of_o person_n and_o place_n according_a to_o those_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n david_n god_n be_v know_v in_o jury_n &_o again_o he_o have_v not_o do_v thus_o to_o every_o nation_n and_o he_o have_v not_o manifest_v or_o make_v know_v his_o judgement_n unto_o they_o but_o among_o the_o gentile_n there_o be_v but_o few_o who_o acknowledge_v and_o right_o worship_v god_n wherefore_o the_o true_a church_n be_v often_o reduce_v unto_o a_o few_o person_n in_o number_n but_o incent_n s._n aug._n tom._n 2._o epist_n 84._o ad_fw-la five_o incent_n notwithstanding_o ever_o visible_a &_o those_o very_a eminent_a in_o sanctity_n and_o holiness_n as_o be_v declare_v by_o s_n augustin_n word_n already_o allege_v but_o the_o state_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v far_o different_a after_o the_o 18._o genes_n 22._o v._n 18._o promulgation_n of_o the_o gospel_n from_o that_o other_o for_o now_o that_o bless_a seed_n of_o abraham_n be_v come_v wherein_o all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v to_o be_v bless_v now_o those_o prophecy_n of_o christ_n inheritance_n and_o kingdom_n be_v fullfil_v 8._o psal_n 2._o v._n 8._o ask_v of_o i_o &_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o all_o nation_n for_o thy_o inheritance_n and_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n for_o thy_o 8._o psal_n 71._o v._n 8._o possession_n also_o he_o shall_v govern_v and_o reign_v from_o sea_n to_o sea_n and_o from_o the_o gyver_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o again_o all_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n ââall_v adore_v he_o and_o all_o nation_n shall_v serve_v he_o moreover_o our_o lord_n have_v prepare_v his_o holy_a arm_n 10._o ibid._n v._o 1â_n isa_n 52._o v._n 10._o ââ_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o nation_n and_o all_o the_o limit_n of_o the_o ârth_n shall_v see_v the_o salvation_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o god_n when_o s._n augustine_n have_v allege_v this_o place_n among_o other_o against_o the_o donatist_n admire_v their_o great_a madness_n and_o ignorance_n who_o affirm_v the_o church_n to_o be_v either_o invisible_a or_o to_o lie_v lurk_v in_o some_o odd_a place_n only_o break_v forth_o into_o these_o most_o true_a 7._o s._n aug._n toâ_n 7._o de_fw-la unit_fw-la eccles_n c._n 7._o word_n worthy_a of_o so_o great_a a_o doctor_n who_o be_v say_v he_o so_o deaf_a who_o be_v so_o mad_a and_o who_o so_o foolish_a to_o contradict_v these_o so_o clear_a &_o evident_a testimony_n but_o he_o which_o know_v not_o what_o he_o speak_v and_o true_o that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v far_o more_o know_v and_o spread_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n after_o the_o promulgation_n of_o the_o gospel_n even_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n than_o it_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n those_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v sufficient_o declare_v but_o 18._o rom._n 10._o v._n 18._o i_o say_v have_v they_o not_o hear_v and_o âââtes_v into_o all_o earth_n have_v the_o sound_n of_o they_o go_v forth_o and_o unto_o the_o â8_o rom_n 1._o v._o â8_o end_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o word_n of_o they_o and_o again_o speak_v unto_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o say_v i_o give_v thanks_n to_o my_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n for_o all_o of_o you_o because_o your_o say_v be_v renew_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n 7._o moreover_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n till_o this_o our_o present_a age_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v not_o only_o visible_a but_o also_o spread_v abroad_o know_v and_o most_o famous_a throughout_o diverse_a kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n as_o many_o historiographer_n aswell_o ecclesiastical_a as_o profane_a do_v testify_v and_o the_o worthy_a cardinal_n câsar_n barââius_n have_v evident_o declare_v and_o that_o not_o only_o throughout_o all_o age_n but_o also_o every_o 7._o s._n aug._n tom._n 7._o de_fw-la unit_fw-la ecc._n cap._n 7._o year_n in_o so_o much_o that_o those_o who_o do_v not_o consent_v and_o agree_v hereunto_o be_v not_o only_o to_o be_v account_v infidel_n but_o as_o s._n augustine_n speak_v very_o fit_o and_o true_o man_n out_o of_o their_o wit_n chap._n vi_o diverse_a other_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n against_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v confute_v the_o three_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n whereby_o they_o impugn_v the_o visible_a church_n be_v this_o the_o holy_a scripture_n compare_v the_o church_n to_o the_o moon_n but_o the_o moon_n do_v often_o time_n not_o appear_v as_o it_o happen_v in_o the_o new_a moon_n and_o in_o the_o eclipse_n i_o answer_v that_o we_o must_v not_o seek_v for_o a_o similitude_n or_o likeness_n in_o all_o thing_n betwixt_o the_o church_n and_o the_o moon_n for_o otherwise_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n shall_v neither_o see_v not_o understand_v nor_o believe_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v altogether_o without_o life_n as_o the_o moon_n be_v but_o in_o this_o matter_n that_o similitude_n or_o likeness_n betwixt_o the_o church_n and_o the_o moon_n be_v only_o to_o be_v seek_v out_o in_o which_o the_o scripture_n compare_v the_o church_n to_o the_o moon_n but_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o compare_v the_o church_n to_o the_o moon_n as_o she_o be_v a_o mutable_a planet_n but_o as_o she_o be_v beautiful_a in_o herself_o beautiful_a say_v 9_o cant._n 6._o v._n 9_o solomon_n be_v the_o moon_n but_o in_o mutuability_n the_o scripture_n compare_v a_o fool_n to_o the_o moon_n but_o not_o the_o church_n a_o fool_n say_v the_o 12._o eccl._n 27._o v._o 12._o wiseman_n be_v change_v as_o the_o moon_n moreover_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o compare_v to_o every_o moon_n but_o only_o to_o the_o moon_n 26._o isa_n 60._o v._n 26._o when_o she_o be_v in_o her_o fullness_n &_o perfection_n yea_o to_o the_o moon_n which_o be_v never_o diminish_v nor_o fail_v hence_o be_v those_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n isay_n which_o caluin_n acknowledge_v verba_fw-la cal._n in_o illa_fw-la verba_fw-la be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o church_n thy_o sun_n shall_v nevermore_o be_v set_v and_o thy_o moon_n shall_v not_o be_v diminish_v or_o as_o caluin_n translate_v it_o shall_v not_o be_v hide_v last_o s._n john_n say_v that_o the_o moon_n be_v under_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o church_n that_o thereby_o we_o may_v understand_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o sun_n to_o wit_n christ_n himself_o where_o withal_o she_o be_v whole_o invest_v and_o 1._o apo._n 12._o v._n 1._o adorn_v be_v free_a from_o all_o mutability_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n 2._o the_o four_o argument_n these_o thing_n which_o we_o
the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n christ_n also_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o god_n himself_o shall_v err_v 6._o the_o three_o absurdity_n be_v that_o a_o building_n can_v consist_v &_o stand_v without_o a_o foundation_n for_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n if_o yet_o say_v the_o apostle_n you_o continue_v in_o the_o faith_n ground_v 19_o colos_n 1._o v._n 19_o and_o stable_a and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o teach_v that_o the_o church_n be_v ground_v upon_o 20._o ephes_n 2._o v._n 20._o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n but_o the_o foundation_n be_v take_v away_o the_o building_n must_v needs_o fall_v this_o absurdity_n be_v so_o manifest_a that_o it_o force_v caluin_n to_o confess_v this_o very_a truth_n which_o now_o we_o âeach_v to_o be_v evident_o convince_v out_o of_o s._n paul_n word_n if_o say_v he_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o 1._o calu._n l._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 2._o sect_n 1._o church_n take_v away_o that_o doctrine_n and_o how_o can_v the_o building_n stand_v thus_o caluin_n 10._o the_o four_o absurdity_n be_v that_o the_o true_a church_n shall_v consist_v and_o be_v without_o her_o proper_a and_o essential_a form_n no_o otherwise_o then_o if_o one_o shall_v say_v that_o a_o true_a and_o live_a man_n may_v consist_v and_o be_v without_o his_o soul_n for_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o the_o true_a preach_v thereof_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o essential_a form_n of_o the_o church_n 12._o calu._n l._n 4._o inutit_fw-la c._n 2._o sect_n 12._o caluin_n also_o acknowledge_v this_o absurdity_n when_o he_o write_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n be_v take_v away_o there_o must_v needs_o follow_v the_o utter_a overthrow_n of_o religion_n even_o as_o the_o life_n of_o man_n be_v overthrow_v and_o take_v away_o if_o he_o be_v stab_v with_o a_o dagger_n or_o deadly_o wound_v at_o the_o hart_n 11._o the_o four_o argument_n be_v deduce_v out_o of_o the_o manifest_a contradiction_n which_o follow_v of_o the_o contrary_a doctrine_n for_o they_o who_o contend_v that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n do_v err_v in_o faith_n do_v not_o indeed_o know_v what_o they_o say_v for_o that_o be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o retain_v and_o keep_v still_o the_o name_n &_o the_o sincere_a faith_n of_o christ_n but_o that_o be_v the_o false_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o only_o profess_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n but_o err_v in_o faith_n wherefore_o to_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n err_v in_o faith_n be_v all_o one_o as_o to_o say_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n but_o the_o false_a which_o impli_v a_o contradiction_n 12._o the_o five_o argument_n be_v deduce_v out_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o our_o adversary_n do_v grant_v unto_o us._n for_o the_o common_a controu_n insraeâ_n 18._o huiuâ_n controu_n doctrine_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v as_o we_o will_v show_v hereafter_o that_o the_o sincere_a preach_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o lawful_a administration_n of_o sacrament_n be_v the_o mark_n and_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a church_n without_o which_o it_o can_v consist_v therefore_o it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o they_o must_v also_o admit_v that_o the_o true_a church_n can_v err_v in_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o true_a preach_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o that_o church_n can_v sincere_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n who_o foul_o err_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o 13._o calu._n l._n 4._o instit_fw-la cap._n 2._o sect_n â_o &_o cap._n 8._o sect_n 12._o &_o 13._o true_a preach_v thereof_o caluin_n also_o out_o of_o diverse_a place_n of_o scripture_n do_v prove_v that_o it_o be_v a_o false_a church_n and_o not_o a_o true_a which_o err_v in_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o true_a church_n can_v err_v therein_o they_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n beza_n in_o like_a manner_n theol._n bezain_n l._n de_fw-fr ecc._n notis_fw-la volume_n 3._o tract_n theol._n write_v that_o the_o true_a church_n can_v err_v in_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o faith_n albeit_o he_o say_v that_o it_o err_v in_o lesser_a matter_n the_o which_o distinction_n of_o point_n of_o faith_n he_o have_v take_v out_o of_o caluin_n the_o church_n therefore_o can_v err_v at_o the_o least_o in_o chief_a point_n 12._o calu._n l._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 1._o sect_n 12._o of_o faith_n even_o in_o our_o adversary_n judgment_n 12._o our_o adversary_n heap_n together_o a_o great_a many_o of_o argument_n but_o they_o be_v such_o as_o may_v easy_o be_v answer_v for_o whereas_o they_o know_v that_o their_o argument_n be_v but_o weak_a and_o almost_o nothing_o wortâ_n they_o endeavour_v by_o the_o multitude_n thereof_o to_o oppress_v the_o truth_n or_o at_o the_o least_o to_o obscure_v &_o hide_v it_o many_o of_o they_o when_o they_o manifest_o see_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o true_a church_n can_v consist_v or_o be_v without_o faith_n they_o crafty_o feygne_v that_o the_o 2._o calu._n l._n 4._o instit_fw-la cap._n 2._o sect_n 2._o controversy_n betwixt_o we_o be_v not_o of_o this_o matter_n but_o of_o some_o other_o far_o different_a that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o that_o whereof_o none_o ever_o doubt_v so_o deal_v caluin_n with_o us._n for_o when_o he_o have_v confess_v that_o to_o be_v the_o false_a church_n and_o not_o the_o true_a which_o err_v in_o principal_a point_n of_o faith_n &_o consequent_o that_o the_o true_a church_n can_v err_v herein_o as_o out_o of_o his_o own_o word_n we_o have_v already_o declare_v at_o the_o last_o he_o feign_v that_o the_o controversy_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v not_o whether_o the_o church_n can_v err_v or_o no_o but_o whether_o she_o may_v err_v if_o she_o take_v not_o for_o her_o companion_n the_o word_n of_o god_n 15._o calu._n l._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 8._o sect_n 13._o &_o 15._o and_o that_o we_o affirm_v that_o whatsoever_o she_o shall_v decree_v either_o without_o or_o beside_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v account_v as_o a_o most_o certain_a oracle_n of_o god_n but_o that_o he_o and_o he_o affirm_v that_o therefore_o the_o church_n can_v err_v because_o it_o permit_v itself_o to_o be_v direct_v and_o govern_v by_o the_o say_a word_n of_o god_n and_o because_o it_o teach_v nothing_o but_o out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o this_o be_v a_o mere_a slaunderâ_n or_o there_o can_v no_o catholic_a be_v find_v who_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o church_n permit_v itself_o to_o be_v direct_v in_o all_o thing_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 2._o supra_fw-la contro_fw-la 1._o ca._n 2._o see_v that_o the_o sole_a word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o object_n of_o faith_n as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o wherefore_o the_o true_a church_n propose_v nothing_o else_o unto_o we_o to_o be_v believe_v with_o a_o catholic_a faith_n but_o the_o most_o sincere_a and_o true_a word_n of_o god_n but_o in_o this_o matter_n only_o be_v the_o controversy_n betwixt_o we_o and_o our_o adversary_n that_o they_o acknowledge_v only_o the_o write_a word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n but_o we_o not_o only_o sequen_o supr_fw-la contro_fw-la 1._o c._n 25._o &_o sequen_o acknowledge_v the_o write_a word_n but_o also_o that_o which_o be_v preach_v and_o deliver_v unto_o we_o by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n whereof_o we_o have_v say_v enough_o in_o the_o precedent_a disputation_n 14._o some_o other_o by_o frivolous_a distinction_n endeavour_v to_o hide_v this_o their_o error_n and_o to_o obscure_v and_o darken_v most_o clear_a &_o perspicuous_a matter_n whereas_o notwithstanding_o in_o very_a truth_n they_o can_v say_v nothing_o cl_v but_o that_o which_o we_o have_v already_o 2._o philip_n de_fw-fr moânay_n tract_n de_fw-fr eccles_n c_o 2._o teach_v for_o they_o invent_v and_o imagine_v a_o twofold_a church_n the_o one_o pure_a the_o other_o impure_a wherein_o they_o place_v even_o heretic_n themselves_o this_o which_o be_v impure_a say_v they_o err_v in_o faith_n but_o not_o that_o which_o be_v pure_a but_o we_o acknowledge_v only_o one_o holy_a &_o catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n with_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o that_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a &_o we_o willing_o yield_v unto_o they_o their_o impure_a church_n wherein_o the_o heretic_n be_v for_o none_o doubt_v but_o that_o such_o a_o church_n may_v err_v but_o as_o this_o be_v a_o false_a &_o not_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n so_o of_o it_o be_v not_o this_o present_a controversy_n but_o only_o of_o the_o true_a and_o pure_a church_n of_o christ_n 15._o other_o distinguish_v the_o church_n into_o
visible_a and_o invisible_a and_o they_o say_v that_o the_o invisible_a church_n can_v err_v but_o 4._o supr_fw-la hac_fw-la ipsa_fw-la cont_n cap._n 4._o the_o visible_a may_v err_v but_o we_o have_v now_o already_o declare_v that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n must_v needs_o be_v visible_a wherefore_o this_o distinction_n be_v now_o sufficient_o refute_v and_o true_o it_o import_v but_o a_o little_a whether_o that_o their_o invisible_a church_n can_v err_v or_o not_o err_v see_v that_o it_o can_v be_v see_v or_o know_v of_o any_o and_o consequent_o can_v be_v profitable_a unto_o any_o 16._o there_o be_v also_o some_o of_o the_o late_a sectary_n who_o distinguish_v and_o divide_v the_o church_n into_o the_o church_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o 8._o junius_n in_o bellarm._n contr._n 1._o l._n 4._o c._n 10._o nota_fw-la 8._o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o into_o that_o which_o remain_v fight_v here_o upon_o earth_n and_o they_o say_v that_o the_o church_n triumphant_a of_o saint_n can_v err_v in_o faith_n or_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n but_o the_o church_n militant_a may_v err_v but_o this_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a distinction_n first_o 1._o hebr._n 21._o v._o 1._o because_o the_o saint_n haven_n ot_fw-mi faith_n but_o a_o clear_a vision_n of_o god_n for_o as_o the_o apostle_n witness_v faith_n concern_v thing_n which_o do_v not_o appear_v wherefore_o if_o at_o any_o time_n faith_n perish_v upon_o earth_n without_o all_o doubt_n it_o can_v not_o be_v find_v in_o heaven_n neither_o must_v we_o exprect_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n from_o heaven_n as_o the_o anabaptist_n do_v who_o seek_v for_o revelation_n from_o heaven_n but_o we_o must_v look_v to_o receive_v it_o from_o the_o controversiae_fw-la supr_fw-la c._n 1._o huius_fw-la controversiae_fw-la church_n militant_a upon_o earth_n moreover_o the_o property_n and_o office_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n before_o allege_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n do_v not_o agree_v as_o be_v manifest_a to_o the_o church_n triumphant_a of_o saint_n but_o to_o the_o church_n militant_a upon_o earth_n for_o neither_o be_v that_o church_n of_o the_o saint_n betroth_v unto_o christ_n by_o faith_n neither_o be_v the_o saint_n those_o who_o preach_v unto_o we_o the_o word_n of_o god_n who_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n unto_o we_o &_o who_o execute_v the_o other_o office_n of_o the_o church_n but_o man_n live_v upon_o earth_n wherefore_o they_o run_v in_o vain_a to_o this_o heavenly_a church_n whereof_o we_o do_v not_o here_o dispute_v 17._o moreover_o that_o be_v also_o a_o very_a weak_a reason_n whereby_o they_o think_v that_o 8._o junius_n ibid._n nota_fw-la 8._o they_o convince_v that_o the_o church_n militant_a upon_o earth_n may_v err_v this_o church_n say_v he_o militant_a upon_o earth_n be_v imperfect_a and_o therefore_o she_o may_v err_v even_o in_o explicate_v the_o doctrine_n of_o say_v for_o otherwise_o a_o perfect_a effect_n may_v proceed_v caput_fw-la 1._o cor._n 13â_n per_fw-la totum_fw-la caput_fw-la from_o a_o imperfect_a cause_n so_o âe_n as_o though_o forsooth_o there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o imperfection_n in_o the_o church_n beside_o infidelity_n or_o error_n in_o explicate_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n or_o as_o though_o the_o whole_a perfection_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v in_o faith_n only_o and_o in_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o and_o not_o also_o in_o charity_n and_o other_o gifteâ_n of_o god_n as_o the_o apostle_n declare_v at_o large_a or_o last_o as_o though_o this_o perfection_n of_o the_o church_n which_o consist_v in_o a_o right_a faith_n and_o a_o good_a explication_n of_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o can_v proceed_v from_o the_o militant_a church_n only_o and_o not_o rather_o from_o a_o most_o perfect_a cause_n to_o wit_n from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o continual_o 26._o ad_fw-la rom._n 8._o v._n 26._o govern_v the_o church_n and_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v help_v her_o infirmity_n and_o imperfection_n 18._o last_o when_o our_o adversary_n 6._o ita_fw-la philip_n mor._n tract_n de_fw-fr eccles_n cap._n 9_o genes_n 3._o v._n 6._o can_v by_o no_o place_n of_o scripture_n nor_o other_o reason_n prove_v that_o the_o church_n have_v err_v they_o gâe_v about_o to_o persuade_v iâ_n by_o many_o example_n and_o here_o they_o beâin_v a_o discourse_n from_o our_o first_o father_n adam_n till_o these_o our_o daâes_n for_o first_o they_o say_v that_o adam_n lose_v his_o faith_n and_o so_o likewise_o his_o wyâe_n eve_n when_o they_o both_o eat_v of_o the_o forbidden_a fruit_n &_o consequent_o the_o whole_o church_n then_o err_v in_o faith_n then_o they_o run_v through_o all_o the_o old_a testament_n till_o christ_n time_n and_o heap_v together_o many_o place_n which_o say_v that_o those_o who_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o natural_a &_o moysaicall_a law_n forsake_v god_n last_o out_o of_o some_o historiographer_n who_o have_v write_v since_o christ_n time_n they_o scrape_v together_o all_o such_o testimony_n as_o sleme_v to_o serve_v to_o this_o purpose_n in_o any_o sort_n 19_o but_o they_o labour_v in_o vain_a for_o if_o these_o kind_n of_o argument_n be_v good_a they_o will_v also_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n itself_o also_o whole_o perish_v and_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o any_o place_n as_o in_o time_n past_o the_o donatist_n contend_v the_o which_o even_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o acknowledge_v to_o by_o very_o absurd_a and_o against_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o have_v be_v declare_v before_o for_o if_o all_o have_v lose_v their_o faith_n than_o indeed_o the_o true_a church_n can_v no_o long_o be_v which_o without_o faith_n can_v consist_v and_o thus_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v perish_v 20._o but_o that_o which_o they_o affirm_v of_o adam_n and_o âue_v to_o wit_n that_o they_o lose_v their_o faith_n by_o sin_v be_v of_o no_o moment_n at_o all_o for_o to_o omit_v that_o they_o do_v not_o so_o much_o prove_v by_o that_o argument_n that_o they_o lose_v their_o faith_n then_o that_o after_o their_o sin_n there_o remain_v neither_o any_o faith_n nor_o church_n in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v true_o manifest_a enough_o that_o this_o belong_v nothing_o to_o this_o disputation_n we_o now_o handle_v for_o neither_o do_v we_o here_o dispute_v of_o the_o church_n of_o angel_n nor_o of_o that_o which_o be_v in_o paradise_n before_o the_o fall_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n but_o of_o that_o only_a 15._o gen._n 3_o v._n 15._o which_o ensue_v that_o promise_n make_v unto_o all_o mankind_n after_o the_o sin_n of_o adam_n wherein_o god_n foretell_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v perpetual_a enmity_n betwixt_o the_o woman_n and_o the_o serpent_n that_o be_v to_o say_v betwixt_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o satan_n and_o wherein_o also_o god_n foretell_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v always_o have_v the_o victory_n 18._o supra_fw-la controu_fw-fr 1._o cap_n 16._o 17._o &_o 18._o over_o satan_n as_o we_o have_v declare_v more_o at_o large_a before_o wherefore_o our_o adversary_n must_v needs_o show_v this_o promise_n to_o be_v frustrate_a if_o they_o desire_v to_o conclude_v any_o thing_n against_o us._n 21._o but_o those_o example_n which_o they_o argumenti_fw-la supra_fw-la cap._n 5._o in_o solut_a 2._o argumenti_fw-la allege_v our_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v the_o very_a argument_n of_o the_o donatist_n and_o other_o ancient_a heretic_n who_o by_o they_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v whole_o decay_v and_o perish_v whereunto_o we_o have_v also_o sufficient_o answer_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n 22._o and_o last_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v take_v out_o of_o those_o author_n who_o write_v after_o christ_n time_n be_v either_o corrupt_v by_o our_o adversary_n or_o take_v out_o of_o apocryphal_a author_n and_o such_o as_o be_v annal._n baron_fw-fr in_o 12._o tom._n annal._n not_o worthy_a of_o credit_n as_o the_o worthy_a cardinal_n baronius_n declare_v manifest_o in_o every_o age_n in_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n and_o the_o same_o have_v bellarmine_n do_v before_o militante_fw-la bellarm._n l._n 3._o de_fw-fr eccles_n militante_fw-la he_o more_o brief_o unto_o who_o we_o refer_v the_o reader_n because_o they_o do_v not_o appertain_v to_o this_o present_a question_n but_o rather_o unto_o that_o which_o be_v of_o the_o continual_a duration_n of_o the_o church_n the_o which_o now_o almost_o every_o one_o do_v acknowledge_v and_o controu_n supr_fw-la c._n 3._o &_o 4._o buius_fw-la controu_n which_o we_o have_v sufficient_o declare_v before_o wherefore_o these_o argument_n be_v of_o so_o small_a worth_n that_o they_o need_v no_o long_o a_o confutation_n chap._n viii_o that_o there_o be_v no_o lawful_a call_v of_o preacher_n or_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n but_o by_o the_o visible_a church_n one_o of_o the_o office_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v to_o appoint_v lawful_a preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o true_a administer_v of_o
the_o sacrament_n but_o because_o there_o be_v no_o small_a controversy_n now_o a_o day_n concern_v this_o office_n we_o will_v brief_o dispatch_v it_o but_o to_o the_o end_n that_o which_o be_v in_o controversy_n may_v the_o better_o be_v understand_v here_o be_v three_o thing_n to_o be_v determine_v first_o that_o the_o call_n of_o god_n be_v necessary_o require_v to_o the_o end_n one_o may_v become_v a_o lawful_a preacher_n or_o administer_v of_o the_o sacrament_n for_o those_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v very_o clear_a and_o manifest_a how_o shall_v they_o 5._o ad_fw-la rom._n 10._o v._n 15._o hebr._n 3._o v._o 4._o &_o 5._o preach_v unless_o they_o be_v send_v and_o again_o neither_o do_v any_o man_n take_v the_o honour_n to_o himself_o but_o he_o that_o be_v cllae_v of_o god_n as_o aaron_n so_o christ_n also_o do_v not_o glorify_v himself_o that_o he_o may_v be_v make_v a_o high_a priest_n but_o he_o that_o speak_v to_o he_o my_o son_n be_v 7._o psal_n 2._o v._n 7._o thou_o etc._n etc._n wherefore_o he_o who_o without_o this_o lawful_a call_n and_o mission_n dare_v presume_v to_o intrude_v himself_o to_o meddle_v with_o these_o divine_a office_n prefer_v himself_o before_o christ_n our_o lord_n for_o christ_n come_v not_o to_o these_o office_n but_o call_v and_o send_v by_o his_o eternal_a father_n last_o if_o in_o humane_a and_o worldly_a matter_n none_o dare_v meddle_v with_o the_o affair_n or_o business_n of_o a_o prince_n without_o his_o licence_n and_o consent_n much_o less_o must_v any_o deal_n with_o these_o supernatural_a and_o divine_a office_n unless_o he_o be_v call_v and_o send_v for_o that_o purpose_n by_o god_n himself_o 2._o the_o second_o be_v that_o there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o calling_n by_o god_n the_o one_o extraordinary_a the_o other_o ordinary_a the_o extraordinary_a call_n be_v when_o god_n immediate_o by_o himself_o call_v any_o &_o in_o this_o manner_n god_n call_v moses_n &_o the_o other_o prophet_n &_o christ_n call_v his_o apostle_n this_o be_v call_v extraordinary_a because_o it_o seldom_o hâapneth_v it_o be_v term_v also_o a_o immediate_a vocation_n because_o it_o be_v do_v immediate_o by_o god_n himself_o the_o ordinary_a vocation_n be_v that_o which_o continue_v always_o in_o the_o church_n and_o be_v do_v immediate_o by_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o god_n only_o by_o their_o mean_n hereupon_o also_o this_o be_v call_v a_o mediate_a vocation_n to_o wit_n in_o respect_n of_o god_n this_o division_n be_v take_v out_o of_o s._n paul_n who_o write_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o apostle_n not_o of_o man_n neither_o by_o man_n but_o by_o jesus_n christ_n and_o god_n 1._o gal._n 11._o v._n 1._o the_o father_n for_o by_o these_o word_n he_o show_v that_o some_o which_o be_v in_o the_o church_n be_v call_v to_o the_o divine_a office_n by_o man_n and_o some_o by_o god_n himself_o 3._o the_o three_o be_v that_o those_o who_o be_v take_v to_o ecclesiastical_a office_n by_o the_o ordinary_a vocation_n they_o receyve_v their_o call_n and_o authority_n from_o the_o church_n for_o this_o ordinary_a vocation_n be_v not_o do_v but_o by_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o whole_a controversy_n be_v of_o the_o extraordinary_a vocation_n for_o those_o who_o in_o this_o age_n have_v bring_v in_o new_a opinion_n see_v themselves_o destitute_a of_o the_o ordinary_a vocation_n they_o fly_v unto_o the_o extraordinary_a the_o which_o say_v they_o must_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o censure_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o church_n whereof_o they_o know_v themselves_o to_o be_v destitute_a but_o we_o on_o the_o other_o side_n affirm_v that_o the_o extraordinary_a vocation_n also_o must_v necessary_o be_v confirm_v and_o approve_v by_o such_o as_o have_v ordinary_a vocation_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o we_o know_v very_o well_o that_o our_o adversary_n have_v not_o true_o this_o extraordinary_a vocation_n as_o afterward_o we_o will_v declare_v more_o at_o large_a but_o suppose_v we_o grant_v they_o to_o have_v this_o extraordinary_a call_n nevertheless_o by_o these_o ensue_a argument_n we_o will_v manifest_o prove_v that_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v confirm_v and_o approve_v by_o those_o who_o have_v their_o ordinary_a vocation_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n 4._o the_o first_o argument_n s._n paul_n be_v immediate_o and_o extraordinary_o call_v by_o 1._o ad_fw-la galat_n 1._o v._n 1._o god_n as_o he_o write_v himself_o and_o yet_o he_o be_v send_v to_o ananias_n who_o have_v the_o ordinary_a vocation_n that_o by_o he_o he_o may_v be_v instruct_v and_o baptize_v and_o afterward_o 7._o act._n 9_o v._n 7._o together_o with_o s._n barnabas_n he_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n by_o those_o who_o be_v the_o ordinary_a pastor_n of_o the_o 3._o act._n 13._o v._n 3._o church_n last_o he_o write_v that_o according_a to_o the_o revelation_n which_o he_o have_v he_o 2._o ibid._n v._o 1._o &_o 2._o go_v to_o jerusalem_n and_o conser_v the_o gospel_n which_o he_o preach_v with_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o ordinary_a pastor_n of_o the_o same_o lest_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v run_v or_o labour_v in_o vain_a they_o therefore_o who_o refuse_v the_o approbation_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n albeit_o they_o be_v never_o so_o extraordinary_o call_v thereunto_o they_o do_v but_o labour_v in_o vain_a 5._o the_o second_o argument_n we_o must_v not_o easy_o believe_v every_o one_o who_o affirm_v himself_o to_o be_v extraordinary_o send_v by_o god_n according_a to_o that_o admonition_n of_o s._n john_n believe_v not_o every_o spirit_n but_o prove_v the_o 1._o 1._o joan._n 4._o 4._o 1._o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n because_o many_o false_a prophet_n be_v go_v out_o into_o the_o world_n but_o this_o proof_n or_o trial_n can_v be_v better_a do_v then_o by_o christ_n church_n which_o be_v as_o s._n paul_n write_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n the_o which_o also_o s._n john_n clear_o show_v by_o the_o word_n follow_v when_o he_o say_v he_o that_o know_v god_n hear_v we_o he_o that_o be_v not_o of_o god_n hear_v we_o not_o in_o this_o we_o know_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o error_n it_o be_v therefore_o a_o most_o certain_a rule_n whereby_o this_o extraordinary_a vocation_n be_v examine_v to_o demand_v whether_o it_o will_v submit_v itself_o to_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n and_o will_v hear_v she_o or_o no_o for_o he_o who_o hear_v the_o church_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o true_a extraordinary_a vocation_n but_o he_o who_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o the_o false_a extraordinary_a vocation_n 6._o the_o three_o argument_n the_o holy_a ghost_n never_o contradict_v himself_o for_o otherwise_o which_o god_n forbid_v he_o shall_v not_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n but_o of_o falsehood_n for_o truth_n be_v never_o repugnant_a to_o truth_n but_o to_o falsehood_n see_v that_o therefore_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o ordinary_a vocation_n be_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o extraordinary_a can_v be_v opposite_a unto_o it_o which_o be_v true_o from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o otherwise_o god_n shall_v be_v opposite_a unto_o himself_o which_o be_v impiety_n to_o think_v wherefore_o it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o the_o extraordinary_a vocation_n must_v agree_v with_o the_o ordidinary_a and_o be_v subject_a unto_o it_o as_o also_o it_o must_v establish_v and_o confirm_v but_o not_o impugn_v it_o hereupon_o say_v the_o apostle_n the_o spirit_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o 32._o 1._o ad_fw-la cor._n 14._o v._n 32._o prophet_n if_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o prophet_n much_o more_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n 7._o the_o four_o argument_n there_o will_v arise_v a_o great_a confusion_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n if_o every_o one_o be_v permit_v to_o preach_v and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n that_o shall_v affirm_v himself_o to_o be_v extraordinary_o call_v without_o any_o other_o examine_v or_o approbation_n of_o the_o church_n for_o so_o every_o fantastical_a fellow_n may_v free_o brag_v and_o affirm_v himself_o to_o be_v extraordinary_o call_v by_o god_n and_o under_o that_o pretence_n and_o title_n may_v preach_v administer_v the_o sacrament_n and_o exercise_v all_o other_o ecclesiastical_a office_n 8._o by_o these_o argument_n some_o more_o 4._o calu._n l._n 4._o inst_z cap._n 3._o sect_n 14_o bez._n c._n 5._o suae_fw-la confess_n ârtic_a 28._o bull_v decad_a 5._o serm_n 4._o learned_a among_o our_o adversary_n be_v convince_v do_v acknowledge_v that_o all_o extraordinary_a vocation_n shall_v be_v examine_v and_o approve_v by_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n of_o christ_n church_n but_o they_o add_v moreover_o that_o this_o be_v true_a when_o the_o church_n itself_o
desire_v see_v that_o the_o church_n be_v always_o present_a who_o explicate_v always_o her_o mând_n unto_o we_o in_o plain_a and_o manifest_a word_n and_o if_o at_o any_o time_n there_o arise_v any_o doubt_n or_o controversy_n in_o her_o decâeâs_n she_o present_o declare_v it_o no_o otherwise_o than_o it_o the_o prophet_n &_o other_o writer_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v yet_o alive_a and_o will_v clear_o explicate_v their_o mind_n unto_o we_o in_o their_o own_o proper_a word_n for_o it_o be_v the_o same_o holy_a ghost_n who_o in_o time_n past_a speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n 20._o matt._n 10._o v._n 20._o and_o who_o speak_v now_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n âor_a it_o be_v not_o you_o that_o speak_v but_o the_o spirit_n of_o your_o father_n that_o speak_v in_o you_o 4._o the_o church_n have_v the_o four_o property_n for_o there_o be_v exceed_o great_a strength_n and_o immutability_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n for_o this_o true_o can_v never_o be_v corrupt_v falsify_v or_o change_v because_o the_o church_n be_v always_o present_a who_o always_o give_v most_o clear_a and_o evident_a testimony_n of_o her_o own_o doctrine_n this_o doctrine_n also_o of_o the_o church_n remain_v always_o constant_a and_o immovable_a because_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v always_o present_a who_o will_v not_o permit_v the_o church_n to_o err_v according_a to_o those_o word_n of_o christ_n i_o will_v 16._o joan._n 14._o v._n 16._o ask_v my_o father_n and_o he_o will_v give_v you_o another_o comforter_n that_o he_o may_v remain_v everlasting_o with_o you_o 5._o the_o church_n have_v the_o five_o property_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o fullness_n and_o sufficiency_n of_o doctrine_n for_o the_o church_n teach_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n according_a to_o that_o promise_n of_o christ_n when_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n shall_v come_v he_o will_v teach_v you_o all_o truth_n so_o that_o the_o 13._o joan._n 16._o v._n 13._o church_n have_v hitherto_o condemn_v all_o heresy_n and_o hereafter_o also_o will_v condemn_v all_o error_n arise_v and_o oppugn_v the_o catholic_a faith_n in_o like_a manner_n she_o always_o answer_v to_o all_o doubt_n and_o difficulty_n propose_v unto_o she_o because_o she_o be_v always_o present_a and_o always_o live_v 6._o the_o church_n have_v also_o the_o sixth_o property_n that_o be_v to_o say_v necessity_n for_o no_o doctrine_n must_v be_v receyve_v as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n unless_o it_o be_v receive_v and_o approve_v 12._o suprac_n 8._o huius_fw-la controu_n gal._n 1._o v._n 12._o by_o the_o church_n as_o we_o have_v declare_v before_o by_o the_o example_n of_o s._n paul_n who_o although_o he_o receive_v his_o gospel_n immediate_o from_o god_n by_o the_o revelation_n of_o christ_n yet_o he_o be_v command_v by_o revelation_n to_o go_v the_o visible_a church_n and_o to_o confer_v the_o gospel_n which_o he_o preach_v with_o those_o who_o be_v in_o the_o visible_a church_n lest_o perhaps_o in_o vain_a he_o shall_v run_v or_o have_v run_v 7._o yea_o and_o other_o can_v not_o safe_o believe_v he_o unless_o his_o doctrine_n have_v be_v approve_v by_o the_o church_n as_o tertulliân_o s._n hierome_n and_o s._n augustine_n well_o note_v the_o apostle_n s_o paul_n say_v s._n augustine_n call_v from_o heaven_n if_o he_o have_v not_o find_v the_o apostle_n with_o who_o by_o conser_v his_o gospel_n he_o may_v appear_v to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o society_n the_o church_n will_v not_o at_o all_o believe_v he_o thus_o s._n augustine_n and_o much_o more_o the_o ghospell_n of_o s._n mark_v and_o s._n luke_n who_o be_v not_o apostle_n but_o only_o their_o disciple_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o this_o approbation_n of_o the_o church_n hereupon_o say_v tertullian_n if_o he_o from_o who_o s._n luke_n receive_v 2._o tertul._n l._n 4._o contra_fw-la marci_n c._n 2._o s._n high_a ep._n 11._o s._n aug._n tom_n 6._o cont_n faustum_n manich._n l._n 28._o c._n 4._o tert._n loco_fw-la cita_fw-la gal._n 2._o v._n 2._o his_o light_n desire_v to_o have_v his_o faith_n and_o preach_v authorize_v by_o his_o predecessor_n how_o much_o more_o reason_n have_v i_o to_o desire_v the_o like_a for_o the_o gospel_n of_o s._n luke_n see_v the_o same_o be_v so_o necessary_a for_o the_o gospel_n of_o his_o master_n thus_o far_o tertullian_n 8._o and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o revelation_n of_o s._n brigit_fw-la and_o s._n catherine_n of_o sienna_n albeit_o they_o be_v true_o reveal_v unto_o they_o by_o god_n yet_o they_o do_v not_o appertain_v to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n because_o they_o be_v not_o approve_v by_o the_o church_n as_o the_o undoubted_a and_o certain_a word_n of_o god_n 9_o even_o as_o also_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n many_o before_o s._n luke_n write_v the_o act_n of_o christ_n as_o s._n luke_n himself_o testify_v and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o ghospell_n only_o of_o 1._o luc._n 1._o v._n 1._o two_o of_o they_o to_o wit_n s._n matthew_n and_o s._n mark_n be_v authentical_a for_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o s._n john_n write_v his_o gospel_n long_o after_o s._n luke_n but_o the_o ghospell_n of_o the_o rest_n who_o write_v before_o s._n luke_n do_v not_o appertain_v unto_o faith_n because_o they_o be_v never_o approve_v by_o the_o church_n whereby_o it_o sufficient_o appear_v how_o necessary_a the_o approbation_n &_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v 10._o the_o church_n have_v the_o seven_o property_n of_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n for_o by_o the_o church_n and_o her_o conjunction_n &_o communion_n a_o true_a believer_n may_v be_v distinguish_v from_o a_o infidel_n for_o he_o who_o believe_v the_o church_n and_o hear_v she_o be_v a_o true_a believer_n but_o he_o who_o do_v not_o hear_v she_o be_v a_o infidel_n if_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o 6._o matt._n 18._o five_o 17._o 1._o joan_n 4._o v._n 6._o church_n say_v our_o lord_n let_v he_o be_v unto_o thou_o as_o a_o heathenor_n publicam_fw-la and_o s._n john_n say_v he_o which_o know_v god_n hear_v we_o he_o which_o be_v not_o of_o god_n do_v not_o hear_v us._n 11._o the_o church_n have_v the_o eight_o property_n for_o whatsoever_o we_o believe_v with_o our_o catholic_a faith_n we_o believe_v it_o because_o it_o be_v reveal_v unto_o we_o from_o god_n by_o 17._o calu._n l._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 9_o sect_n 1._o &_o beza_n c._n 4._o suae_fw-la confess_n sect_n 17._o the_o church_n but_o god_n now_o reveal_v nothing_o to_o every_o member_n of_o the_o church_n immediate_o by_o himself_o yea_o even_o our_o adversary_n do_v well_o admonish_v we_o to_o labour_v most_o of_o all_o that_o no_o way_n or_o leave_v be_v grant_v to_o such_o fantastical_a revelation_n 12._o the_o church_n have_v the_o nine_o property_n for_o the_o church_n convince_v also_o turk_n and_o infidel_n by_o natural_a reason_n of_o which_o sort_n there_o be_v many_o extant_a in_o s._n controu_n s._n thom._n in_o 4_o lib._n contra_fw-la gentes_fw-la insracap_n 19_o huius_fw-la controu_n thomas_n we_o prove_v also_o the_o church_n by_o the_o very_a sign_n and_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v manifest_a unto_o all_o even_o turk_n and_o infidel_n whereof_o we_o will_v speak_v more_o hereafter_o 12._o the_o church_n have_v also_o the_o ten_o property_n because_o in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n there_o be_v express_v a_o article_n of_o the_o church_n for_o present_o after_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o true_a god_n the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n first_o of_o all_o be_v set_v down_o this_o article_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n 14._o moreover_o that_o the_o church_n and_o her_o preach_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o faith_n evident_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n for_o when_o s._n paul_n dispute_v of_o that_o faith_n whereby_o all_o be_v to_o to_o be_v save_v he_o reduce_v this_o whole_a faith_n to_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o church_n &_o unto_o her_o send_n &_o call_v of_o other_o to_o her_o ecclesiastical_a office_n 15._o so_o this_o apostle_n in_o another_o place_n declare_v that_o god_n always_o appoint_v some_o pastor_n seq_fw-la rom._n 10._o five_o 14._o &_o seq_fw-la and_o doctor_n in_o his_o church_n that_o we_o be_v not_o child_n waver_v in_o faith_n and_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n but_o that_o we_o may_v be_v stable_n and_o constant_a always_o in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o confession_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 16._o last_o those_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n be_v most_o evident_a wherein_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o 15._o 1._o tim._n 3._o â_o 15._o truth_n where_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v that_o every_o foundation_n of_o any_o building_n have_v two_o office_n that_o
be_v certain_a in_o itself_o before_o the_o church_n begin_v to_o be_v the_o church_n therefore_o must_v be_v that_o which_o give_v certainty_n to_o the_o doctrine_n or_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o rather_o their_o doctrine_n and_o writing_n do_v afford_v sufficient_a certainty_n to_o the_o church_n so_o caluin_n 10._o calu._n lib._n 1._o inst_z c._n 7_o sect_n 2._o beza_n in_o 2._o cap._n ad_fw-la ephes_n v._o 10._o i_o answer_v first_o if_o we_o will_v follow_v the_o interpretation_n of_o this_o place_n allege_v by_o beza_n caluins_n argument_n will_v be_v nothing_o worth_a for_o beza_n will_v have_v this_o to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o those_o word_n that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n and_o he_o will_v have_v only_a christ_n to_o be_v the_o groundwork_n and_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n he_o say_v be_v only_o as_o the_o architect_n and_o builder_n of_o this_o church_n as_o also_o all_o faithful_a minister_n of_o christ_n be_v at_o this_o day_n but_o not_o the_o ground_n itself_o beza_n also_o add_v that_o he_o be_v true_o antichrist_n who_o attribute_v that_o unto_o himself_o which_o belong_v only_o to_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o be_v the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n 8._o out_o of_o which_o doctrine_n of_o beza_n it_o follow_v manifest_o that_o caluin_n be_v true_o antichrist_n for_o he_o attribute_v unto_o all_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o their_o doctrine_n and_o consequent_o unto_o himself_o and_o his_o own_o doctrine_n that_o they_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n but_o according_a to_o beza_n whosoever_o attribute_v this_o unto_o himself_o be_v plain_o antichrist_n because_o he_o attribute_v that_o unto_o himself_o which_o only_o belong_v unto_o christ_n 9_o second_o i_o answer_v that_o yet_o whatsoever_o beza_n say_v caluins_n exposition_n be_v the_o true_a agree_v therein_o with_o s._n chrrsostome_n ephes_n s._n chrys_n hom._n 6._o inc_fw-la 2._o ad_fw-la ephes_n s._n aug._n tom._n 8._o in_o psal_n 86._o adv_n 1._o theoph_n in_o e._n 2._o ephes_n s._n augustine_n theophilact_n and_o other_o ancient_a father_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o s._n paul_n in_o this_o place_n call_v the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o faith_n or_o that_o which_o be_v alone_o their_o doctrine_n for_o in_o the_o sameplace_n he_o compare_v christ_n to_o the_o chiese_n corner_n stone_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o this_o spiritual_a building_n do_v consist_v of_o many_o stone_n but_o there_o be_v one_o low_a and_o chief_a to_o wit_n christ_n jesus_n who_o support_v all_o and_o who_o be_v that_o corner_n stone_n which_o unit_v 14._o ephes_n 2._o v._n 14._o the_o jew_n and_o gentill_n together_o as_o s._n paul_n say_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n 10._o hence_o it_o be_v that_o s._n john_n in_o the_o apocalyps_n affitm_v that_o this_o heavent_o 14._o apoc._n 2d_o v._n 14._o city_n have_v twelve_o foundation_n and_o not_o only_o one_o and_o christ_n notwithstanding_o be_v initio_fw-la s._n aug._n tom_n 8._o in_o psal_n 86._o initio_fw-la the_o chief_a of_o all_o the_o foundation_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o foundation_n as_o s._n augustine_n say_v that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o all_o those_o twelve_o foundation_n he_o be_v the_o foundation_n 11_o and_o here_o the_o apostle_n use_v tâe_v hebrew_a phrase_n in_o which_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o say_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n &_o to_o say_v upon_o the_o apostolical_a and_o prophetical_a foundation_n for_o the_o hebrew_n 7._o psal_n 5._o v._n 7._o often_o use_v the_o genitive_a case_n of_o the_o substantive_a for_o the_o adiective_n as_o a_o man_n of_o blood_n &_o deceit_n in_o the_o five_o psalm_n signify_v a_o bloody_a and_o deceitful_a man_n 12._o furthermore_o that_o which_o caluin_n say_v that_o the_o apostolical_a and_o prophetical_a doctrine_n have_v it_o certainty_n of_o itself_o before_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o church_n that_o indeed_o be_v true_a but_o this_o be_v the_o certainty_n which_o it_o have_v of_o it_o own_o nature_n from_o 19_o cap._n 13._o praecedent_n §._o 17._o &_o 19_o god_n himself_o but_o in_o regard_n of_o we_o it_o receive_v it_o certainty_n from_o the_o church_n as_o caluin_n and_o bezâ_n witness_n &_o as_o we_o have_v already_o declare_v 13._o but_o caluin_n err_v in_o this_o that_o he_o think_v s._n paul_n to_o treat_v in_o this_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n only_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n for_o not_o only_o the_o apostolical_a scripture_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o few_o of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n to_o wit_n only_o five_o have_v write_v any_o thing_n but_o of_o the_o other_o seven_o there_o be_v no_o writing_n extant_a but_o yet_o they_o all_o teach_v the_o apostle_n therefore_o speak_v of_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n and_o only_a of_o the_o scripture_n 14._o but_o neither_o do_v we_o deny_v that_o faith_n depend_v of_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n yea_o more_o than_o that_o we_o say_v that_o our_o faith_n depend_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o present_a church_n for_o when_o we_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n we_o 17._o ad_fw-la rom._n 10._o v._n 17._o do_v not_o understand_v by_o the_o church_n the_o shoulder_n or_o body_n of_o they_o who_o be_v in_o she_o but_o their_o authority_n doctrine_n and_o preach_v for_o by_o these_o thing_n faith_n be_v engender_v and_o as_o the_o apostle_n witness_v faith_n be_v by_o hear_v 15._o but_o whensoever_o we_o treat_v of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n we_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o that_o which_o want_v true_a faith_n which_o be_v deaf_a dumb_a or_o foolish_a and_o which_o also_o either_o neglect_v or_o not_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o scripture_n for_o such_o a_o church_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o we_o speak_v of_o that_o which_o believe_v which_o speak_v which_o preach_v the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n which_o keep_v and_o expound_v the_o scripture_n most_o faithful_o and_o which_o fit_o appli_v they_o in_o sermon_n &_o exhoâtations_n among_o we_o therefore_o all_o these_o word_n have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o signification_n the_o church_n the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n the_o preach_v and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v by_o the_o church_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n propose_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o church_n and_o we_o understand_v all_o these_o thing_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n when_o we_o say_v that_o she_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n for_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v either_o property_n action_n or_o office_n of_o the_o church_n which_o can_v be_v separate_v from_o she_o 16._o wherefore_o our_o adversary_n do_v err_v exceed_o when_o they_o separate_v every_o one_o of_o these_o from_o the_o church_n and_o oppose_v or_o object_v it_o against_o she_o as_o though_o it_o be_v a_o quite_o distinct_a thing_n from_o she_o nay_o of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n they_o make_v she_o the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n therefore_o the_o apostolical_a &_o prophetical_a doctrine_n must_v not_o be_v separate_v and_o make_v opposite_a unto_o the_o church_n as_o caluin_n do_v see_v that_o it_o be_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n caluin_n therefore_o dispute_v as_o if_o one_o shall_v make_v this_o argument_n a_o man_n without_o his_o soul_n neither_o see_v speak_v nor_o understand_v therefore_o a_o man_n neither_o see_v speak_v nor_o understand_v 17._o but_o peradventure_o some_o will_v say_v we_o have_v say_v a_o little_a before_o that_o faith_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o church_n and_o now_o we_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o faith_n whereof_o the_o one_o seem_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o other_o i_o answer_v that_o herein_o there_o be_v no_o contrariety_n for_o there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o faith_n the_o one_o be_v the_o particular_a faith_n of_o every_o christian_a whereby_o together_o with_o hope_n and_o charity_n every_o one_o be_v justify_v the_o other_o be_v the_o general_a and_o common_a faith_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o particular_a faith_n of_o each_o one_o rely_v upon_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n upon_o the_o faith_n preach_v and_o authority_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o she_o herself_o rely_v upon_o the_o general_a faith_n and_o profession_n and_o preach_v thereof_o in_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o be_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n when_o therefore_o we_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o faith_n we_o speak_v of_o the_o particular_a faith_n of_o every_o christian_a but_o when_o we_o say_v that_o
of_o it_o albeit_o it_o be_v immediate_o from_o god_n to_o the_o end_n it_o be_v make_v manifest_a unto_o us._n for_o otherwise_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v oblige_v by_o the_o authority_n thereof_o but_o this_o be_v not_o do_v now_o by_o miracle_n nor_o by_o the_o immediate_a or_o extraordinary_a revelation_n of_o god_n therefore_o it_o rest_v that_o we_o say_v it_o be_v do_v by_o the_o ordinary_a &_o mediate_a revelation_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o the_o church_n or_o rather_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o speak_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o church_n chap._n ix_o that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n see_v that_o there_o arise_v daily_o so_o many_o disputation_n and_o controversye_n of_o matter_n of_o faith_n none_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o there_o must_v necessary_o be_v some_o judge_n appoint_v who_o must_v define_v end_n and_o determine_v such_o controversye_n for_o otherwise_o there_o will_v never_o be_v a_o end_n of_o such_o matter_n but_o it_o be_v a_o great_a difficulty_n who_o must_v be_v this_o judge_n the_o sectary_n of_o this_o time_n almost_o all_o refuse_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n for_o they_o see_v very_o well_o that_o if_o they_o admit_v she_o as_o judge_v all_o their_o error_n will_v be_v quite_o overthrow_v wherefore_o some_o of_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o sole_a scripture_n must_v be_v the_o judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n and_o this_o be_v the_o first_o doctrine_n of_o our_o adversary_n to_o wit_n luther_n &_o zuinglius_fw-la 2._o but_o our_o late_a adversary_n when_o they_o consider_v that_o it_o be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n to_o make_v the_o scripture_n be_v a_o thing_n 1._o cap._n 18._o controu_fw-fr 1._o without_o life_n the_o judge_n as_o we_o have_v declare_v before_o they_o fly_v unto_o their_o private_a spirit_n the_o which_o they_o will_v have_v the_o judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n but_o lest_o they_o may_v seem_v to_o attribute_v too_o much_o unto_o themselves_o they_o endeavour_v to_o colour_v their_o private_a spirit_n with_o the_o famous_a title_n or_o name_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n affirm_v the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v the_o only_a judge_n of_o all_o controversye_n 3._o wherefore_o there_o be_v three_o thing_n here_o to_o be_v prove_v first_o that_o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v judge_n second_o that_o neither_o the_o private_a spirit_n can_v be_v it_o three_o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v the_o only_a and_o most_o true_a judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n 4._o as_o concern_v the_o first_o whereas_o our_o adunersary_n every_o where_n teach_v that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v which_o be_v not_o express_o to_o be_v find_v in_o holy_a scripture_n it_o be_v a_o strange_a thing_n that_o they_o will_v persuade_v man_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n whereas_o we_o read_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o any_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n 5._o yea_o even_o in_o these_o testimony_n be_v only_o attribute_v to_o the_o scripture_n and_o not_o judgement_n search_v the_o scripture_n say_v christ_n 19_o joan._n 5._o v._n 19_o and_o the_o same_o be_v they_o that_o give_v testimony_n of_o i_o and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v often_o call_v in_o scripture_n in_o the_o hebrew_n phrase_n eda_n or_o eduth_n or_o tenda_n that_o be_v to_o say_v 118._o psalm_n 118._o a_o testimony_n yea_o even_o in_o one_o psalm_n it_o be_v call_v above_o twenty_o time_n by_o that_o name_n 6._o moreover_o in_o the_o prophet_n isay_n in_o the_o same_o place_n false_o cite_v by_o our_o adversary_n that_o they_o may_v prove_v thereby_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o controversy_n it_o be_v call_v a_o witness_n or_o a_o testimony_n and_o not_o a_o judge_n nay_o rather_o to_o the_o 20._o isa_n 8._o v._n 20._o law_n say_v the_o prophet_n and_o to_o the_o testimony_n 7._o furthermore_o one_o thing_n be_v more_o absurd_a that_o in_o matter_n of_o such_o moment_n to_o appoint_v such_o a_o deaf_a and_o dumb_a judge_n and_o who_o may_v also_o be_v corrupt_v for_o both_o party_n and_o who_o sentence_n either_o party_n use_v indifferent_o but_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o scripture_n be_v such_o a_o judge_n for_o it_o can_v neither_o speak_v nor_o hear_v and_o so_o in_o like_a manner_n do_v all_o heretic_n ancient_a and_o modern_a also_o use_v the_o scripture_n last_o almost_o all_o our_o adversary_n do_v see_v how_o absurd_a these_o thing_n be_v and_o therefore_o they_o fly_v unto_o their_o own_o private_a spirit_n the_o which_o they_o call_v the_o holy_a ghost_n wherefore_o let_v we_o come_v now_o to_o the_o second_o point_n 8._o as_o concern_v therefore_o this_o private_a spirit_n first_o there_o be_v none_o who_o doubt_v but_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o chief_a judge_n of_o all_o controversye_n but_o the_o question_n be_v where_o this_o holy_a spirit_n be_v to_o be_v find_v and_o in_o who_o it_o remain_v 9_o moreover_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o remain_v or_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o any_o book_n lest_o peradventure_o our_o adversary_n shall_v send_v we_o to_o their_o bibles_n but_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o believer_n now_o we_o ask_v whether_o this_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o all_o be_v in_o the_o hart_n of_o every_o believer_n or_o rather_o in_o the_o hart_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n if_o they_o say_v in_o the_o hart_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n we_o have_v our_o desire_n if_o they_o say_v in_o the_o hart_n of_o every_o private_a man_n it_o will_v follow_v that_o no_o private_a person_n can_v err_v in_o his_o own_o judgement_n see_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n can_v err_v in_o his_o judgement_n heâre_o true_o we_o seek_v for_o that_o judge_n which_o can_v err_v 10._o furthermore_o every_o private_a man_n shall_v be_v come_v the_o judge_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n if_o every_o such_o private_a person_n have_v this_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n whereupon_o there_o will_v ensue_v a_o great_a confusion_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n 11._o beside_o that_o if_o every_o believer_n be_v the_o judge_n they_o our_o adversary_n must_v needs_o admit_v the_o ancient_a father_n as_o judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n the_o which_o they_o will_v never_o do_v for_o they_o dare_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v true_a believer_n why_o therefore_o do_v they_o attribute_v unto_o themselves_o that_o which_o they_o so_o uâhemently_o deny_v to_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n 21._o moreover_o if_o every_o believer_n can_v err_v in_o his_o judgement_n much_o less_o can_v a_o great_a many_o such_o err_v and_o least_o of_o all_o can_v the_o church_n of_o all_o believer_n err_v wherefore_o whatsoever_o our_o adversary_n say_v they_o will_v be_v force_v to_o confess_v and_o grant_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o judge_n as_o he_o remain_v in_o the_o whole_a church_n speak_v and_o judge_v by_o the_o mouth_n thereof_o and_o in_o this_o manner_n even_o out_o of_o our_o adversary_n doctrine_n we_o gather_v by_o a_o necessary_a consequence_n our_o opinion_n 13._o last_o that_o which_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o private_a spirit_n of_o every_o particular_a person_n be_v judge_n be_v thereby_o declare_v to_o be_v false_a that_o they_o themselves_o acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v no_o private_a man_n which_o at_o some_o time_n can_v err_v in_o his_o indgment_n but_o here_o we_o inquire_v for_o a_o judge_n which_o can_v err_v for_o otherwise_o in_o matter_n of_o such_o moment_n and_o of_o which_o our_o eternal_a salvation_n depend_v we_o shall_v dangerous_o be_v force_v to_o have_v recourse_n to_o a_o erroneous_a judge_n who_o judgement_n be_v variable_a uncertain_a deceitful_a and_o oftentimes_o manifest_o false_a 14._o but_o now_o as_o concern_v the_o three_o point_n that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n we_o prove_v by_o these_o argument_n first_o the_o church_n have_v all_o the_o property_n of_o a_o fit_a judge_n for_o first_o she_o have_v a_o exact_a knowledge_n the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v teach_v you_o say_v christ_n all_o truth_n 15._o second_o the_o church_n can_v be_v corrupt_v by_o any_o gift_n or_o prayer_n for_o she_o be_v as_o the_o apostle_n witness_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n 16._o three_o the_o church_n hear_v 15._o 2._o tim._n 3._o v._n 15._o speak_v give_v her_o judgement_n and_o examine_v the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n and_o father_n as_o experience_n itself_o teach_v us._n 17._o four_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o stand_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n who_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n say_v our_o lord_n let_v 17._o matt._n 18._o v._n 17._o he_o be_v unto_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o
matter_n all_o shall_v embrace_v or_o follow_v beside_o that_o every_o one_o teach_v what_o he_o list_v and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o disdain_v to_o be_v reprehend_v or_o correct_v by_o another_o whereby_o there_o must_v needs_o arise_v many_o jar_n and_o contention_n among_o they_o 4._o but_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o be_v far_o otherwise_o for_o if_o there_o arise_v any_o question_n or_o controversy_n which_o can_v be_v desined_a and_o determine_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n present_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n end_v this_o controversy_n and_o forbid_v under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n any_o to_o teach_v the_o contrary_a and_o by_o this_o mean_v every_o controversy_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n among_o catholic_n be_v forthwith_o end_v but_o if_o the_o matter_n be_v obscure_a and_o can_v easy_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n nor_o be_v very_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n than_o the_o roman_a church_n command_v both_o party_n that_o one_o of_o they_o do_v not_o condemn_v the_o other_o opinion_n as_o we_o see_v practise_v concern_v the_o conception_n of_o the_o b._n virgin_n mary_n and_o in_o this_o manner_n all_o matter_n of_o controversy_n be_v end_v and_o take_v away_o 5._o vide_fw-la conc._n trid._n sect_n 5._o post_n canon_n 5._o the_o lutheran_n be_v convince_v by_o âhis_n argument_n do_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o âopes_n supremacy_n be_v very_o profitable_a and_o necessary_a for_o the_o church_n for_o the_o preseruationâf_a this_o unity_n and_o good_a agreement_n in_o all_o âinges_n as_o a_o little_a after_o we_o will_v evidentâ_n 14._o infr._n cap._n 24._o §._o 4._o &_o sequent_a coccius_n l._n â_o âitato_n art_n 11._o idem_fw-la âodâ_n lib._n ar._n 12._o 13._o 14._o demonstrate_v out_o of_o their_o own_o wriângs_n 5._o second_o as_o concern_v the_o sanctity_n and_o holiness_n of_o the_o church_n cocciusâeclareth_v âeclareth_z very_o well_o and_o brief_o that_o even_o ârom_fw-mi the_o very_a first_o beginning_n till_o now_o ââre_o have_v always_o be_v some_o holy_a and_o ââdly_a person_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yea_o that_o also_o there_o never_o want_v soââ_n tim._n calu._n conc_fw-fr 10._o gall._n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la eph._n conc_fw-fr 10._o in_o cap._n 11._o epist_n 1._o ad_fw-la cor._n &_o con_v c._n 9_o sub_fw-la fin_fw-fr in_o 1._o ad_fw-la tim._n who_o do_v very_o strange_a and_o miraculous_a thing_n moreover_o in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o prove_v manifest_o the_o great_a impiety_n and_o wickedness_n of_o our_o adversary_n and_o that_o there_o be_v never_o any_o true_a miracle_n wrought_v by_o any_o of_o they_o yea_o caluin_n himself_o do_v often_o confess_v and_o acknowledge_v the_o dishonesty_n and_o wickedness_n of_o his_o follower_n to_o be_v very_o great_a 6._o that_o it_o can_v most_v certain_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o altogether_o be_v destitute_a of_o the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n sufficient_o appear_v by_o those_o word_n of_o christ_n these_o sign_n shall_v follow_v those_o thaâ_n 18._o marc._n ult._n c._n 17._o &_o 18._o believe_v in_o my_o name_n they_o shall_v cast_v out_o devil_n they_o shall_v speak_v with_o new_a tongue_n serpent_n shall_v they_o take_v away_o and_o if_o they_o drink_v any_o deadly_a thing_n it_o shall_v not_o hurt_v they_o they_o shall_v impose_v hand_n upon_o the_o sick_a and_o they_o shall_v be_v whole_a and_o that_o this_o promise_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o only_o to_o be_v restrain_v to_o the_o apostle_n time_n we_o must_v needs_o confess_v unless_o we_o will_v say_v that_o the_o authority_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n &_o to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n the_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o same_o promise_n do_v only_o appertain_v to_o the_o apostle_n tyme._n but_o that_o the_o saânts_n of_o god_n which_o live_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v do_v all_o those_o miracle_n which_o christ_n recount_v in_o the_o foresaid_a place_n be_v manifest_a by_o that_o which_o citat_fw-la cocc_fw-la art_n 13._o citat_fw-la coccius_n relate_v of_o they_o 7._o but_o here_o it_o be_v diligent_o to_o be_v consider_v that_o the_o impiety_n or_o lack_n of_o all_o holiness_n in_o our_o adversary_n be_v not_o casual_a or_o accidentary_a unto_o they_o as_o it_o be_v with_o we_o that_o iâ_n flow_v from_o the_o malice_n of_o man_n but_o it_o proceed_v out_o of_o the_o very_a doctrine_n of_o our_o aduesary_n for_o they_o teach_v that_o none_o can_v true_o have_v their_o sin_n forgive_v they_o that_o none_o can_v have_v any_o true_a holiness_n before_o god_n that_o none_o can_v have_v any_o freewill_n to_o do_v good_a work_n that_o no_o work_n of_o a_o just_a man_n can_v be_v perfect_a or_o meritorious_a before_o god_n that_o all_o thing_n aswell_o the_o bad_a as_o the_o good_a be_v do_v by_o a_o certain_a necessary_a predestination_n of_o god_n that_o no_o satisfaction_n for_o our_o sin_n be_v necessary_a that_o we_o need_v not_o confess_v our_o sin_n that_o good_a work_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o life_n everlasting_a that_o god_n commandment_n be_v impossible_a and_o such_o other_o paradox_n whereof_o we_o will_v speak_v more_o hereafter_o all_o which_o do_v vehement_o incite_v and_o stir_v up_o man_n to_o all_o sin_n and_o iniquity_n but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n inflame_v continual_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n with_o the_o love_n of_o virtue_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o good_a work_n 8._o three_o the_o roman_a church_n may_v true_o be_v call_v catholic_a and_o that_o it_o be_v no_o less_o catholic_a now_o than_o it_o be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o ancient_a holy_a father_n both_o we_o have_v sufficient_o declare_v before_o and_o thomas_n bozâuâ_n prove_v at_o large_a for_o albeit_o eccles_n sâprac_n 10._o huius_fw-la cont._n §._o 14._o bozius_n the_o â_z eccles_n the_o roman_a faith_n may_v seem_v to_o have_v fail_v in_o some_o place_n of_o europe_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o have_v meruailous_o increase_v and_o still_o daily_o increase_v in_o asia_n africa_n and_o those_o wide_a country_n of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n indies_n but_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o our_o adversary_n church_n be_v whole_o destitute_a of_o this_o mark_n and_o sign_n 9_o final_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n may_v true_o be_v call_v apostolical_a it_o appear_v sufficient_o by_o the_o continual_a succession_n of_o pastor_n ever_o since_o s._n peter_n time_n to_o paul_n the_o five_o who_o be_v now_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o which_o succession_n 2._o cocc_fw-la l._n 8._o citat_fw-la art_n 2._o be_v brief_o relate_v by_o coccius_n but_o our_o adversary_n can_v never_o show_v the_o like_a 10._o and_o caluin_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o those_o holy_a father_n irânaeus_n augustine_n subfinem_fw-la calu._n l._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 2._o sect._n â_o subfinem_fw-la optatus_n and_o many_o other_o dispute_v with_o old_a heretic_n use_v this_o argument_n the_o which_o be_v deduce_v from_o the_o continual_a succession_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n but_o say_v he_o they_o do_v so_o because_o till_o their_o time_n there_o be_v nothing_o of_o the_o doctrine_n deliver_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o apostle_n change_v at_o rome_n neither_o as_o yet_o be_v there_o any_o of_o that_o doctrine_n change_v which_o be_v at_o rome_n in_o s._n augustine_n time_n and_o beside_o the_o same_o succession_n 2._o calu._n â_o â_o cit_fw-la sect_n 2._o continue_v still_o for_o we_o do_v not_o say_v as_o they_o false_o slander_v we_o that_o the_o succession_n only_o of_o person_n without_o true_a doctrine_n be_v sufficient_a but_o we_o urge_v a_o continual_a succession_n aswell_o of_o person_n as_o of_o doctrine_n see_v that_o no_o doctrine_n can_v consist_v or_o remain_v without_o those_o person_n which_o teach_v it_o chap._n vi_o that_o the_o church_n of_o the_o city_n of_o româ_n be_v the_o chief_a of_o all_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v clear_o convince_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n beside_o those_o argument_n hitherto_o allege_v out_o of_o the_o property_n office_n and_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a church_n whereby_o we_o have_v prove_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v some_o other_o reason_n which_o may_v be_v deduce_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n whereof_o see_v bellarmine_n and_o sanders_n fiâe_n bell._n &_o saunder_n locis_fw-la citat_fw-la supr_fw-la cap._n 2d_o §._o 27._o in_o fiâe_n we_o according_a to_o our_o accustom_a brevity_n will_v only_o bring_v two_o principal_a place_n for_o this_o purpose_n whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_o declare_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o only_o the_o true_a church_n but_o that_o also_o that_o which_o be_v now_o in_o rome_n be_v more_o eminent_a and_o famous_a than_o all_o other_o church_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n the_o prince_n of_o
procure_v favour_n and_o estimation_n unto_o it_o therefore_o in_o the_o west_n part_n it_o be_v for_o honour_n sake_n call_v the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o in_o another_o place_n i_o grant_v say_v he_o that_o there_o remain_v also_o true_a epistle_n of_o the_o old_a bishop_n wherein_o they_o set_v forth_o the_o honour_n of_o their_o sea_n with_o glorious_a title_n of_o which_o sort_n be_v some_o epistle_n of_o leo._n 6._o but_o the_o lutheran_n in_o their_o synodical_a act_n do_v acknowledge_v that_o even_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a &_o in_o the_o day_n of_o s._n cyprian_n s._n hierome_n and_o s._n augustine_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v the_o chief_a supremacy_n the_o which_o say_v they_o we_o willing_o admit_v and_o embrace_v to_o increase_v the_o good_a agreement_n in_o faith_n piety_n and_o ecclesiastical_a policy_n for_o they_o very_o well_o perceive_v that_o this_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n do_v avail_n much_o to_o keep_v unity_n and_o concord_n in_o doctrine_n and_o ecclesiastical_a policy_n 7._o and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o say_v lutheran_n in_o their_o article_n agree_v upon_o at_o smalcalde_fw-es the_o which_o they_o make_v in_o the_o year_n 1537._o to_o be_v exhibit_v to_o the_o general_a council_n which_o be_v report_v to_o be_v hold_v at_o mantua_n among_o other_o article_n they_o approve_v this_o of_o the_o pope_n authority_n and_o unto_o these_o philip_n melancthon_n also_o subscribe_v who_o also_o afterward_o in_o the_o year_n 1548._o fare_v more_o evident_o approve_v the_o pope_n authority_n wit_v thus_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o lord_n 1._o habentur_fw-la ista_fw-la eode_n c._n 6._o fol._n 7._o pag._n 1._o ambassador_n theophilus_n beside_o these_o say_v he_o we_o reverent_o honour_v and_o worship_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n and_o all_o ecclesiastical_a policy_n so_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v not_o reject_v us._n thus_o philip_n in_o that_o place_n 8._o but_o what_o be_v the_o most_o true_a opinion_n of_o melancthon_n concern_v this_o matter_n appear_v more_o evident_o by_o a_o certain_a epistle_n he_o write_v in_o the_o year_n 1535._o of_o the_o 1597._o extat_fw-la integra_fw-la ista_fw-la epist_n philip._n iâ_n cent_n epist_n theol._n ad_fw-la io._n sâhunehelium_n ministr_n un_fw-fr bipontinun_n est_fw-la quam_fw-la ista_fw-la epist_n inter_fw-la caeteras_fw-la ordine_fw-la 74._o iuxta_fw-la edâ_n bipont_n anno_fw-la 1597._o ecclesiastical_a jar_n and_o the_o agreement_n which_o be_v make_v concern_v the_o article_n in_o controversy_n wherein_o he_o allege_v some_o reason_n for_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n these_o be_v philippe_n word_n speak_v of_o some_o of_o he_o who_o do_v hinder_v &_o resist_v the_o agreement_n which_o be_v to_o be_v make_v with_o catholic_n some_o of_o they_o say_v he_o do_v think_v that_o nothing_o else_o be_v demand_v but_o that_o have_v shake_v of_o the_o pope_n monarchy_n and_o reject_v all_o the_o old_a ecclesiastical_a ordinance_n a_o certain_a barbarous_a liberty_n shall_v be_v establish_v and_o a_o little_a after_o we_o do_v grant_v that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a policy_n be_v a_o thing_n very_o lawful_a in_o it_o selâl_v that_o be_v to_o say_v even_o as_o there_o be_v some_o bishop_n who_o have_v charge_n or_o rule_v diverse_a church_n so_o also_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n exceed_v all_o other_o byshope_n in_o authority_n this_o canonical_a policy_n as_o i_o think_v no_o wise_a man_n either_o can_v or_o shall_v reject_v if_o he_o desire_v to_o keep_v himself_o within_o his_o own_o limit_n and_o again_o as_o concern_v the_o riches_n and_o revenue_n they_o be_v the_o libre_fw-la all_fw-mi and_o magnificent_a gyste_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n wherefore_o as_o concern_v this_o arââcle_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o other_o bishope_n there_o be_v no_o controversy_n among_o us._n foâ_n both_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n may_v easy_o retain_v his_o authority_n and_o the_o other_o bishop_n may_v also_o keep_v they_o and_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v some_o governor_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n who_o may_v ordain_v those_o which_o be_v call_v to_o ecclesiastical_a office_n and_o may_v exercise_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o say_a church_n in_o all_o judicial_a and_o diffiâulte_v matter_n as_o also_o may_v examine_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o priest_n thereof_o and_o that_o if_o there_o be_v no_o such_o bishop_n yet_o there_o shall_v be_v such_o ordain_v for_o that_o purpose_n and_o a_o little_a after_o that_o monarchy_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v very_o good_a in_o my_o judgement_n and_o necessary_a to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o uniform_a good_a agreement_n in_o doctrnie_n may_v be_v keep_v in_o many_o nation_n wherefore_o perfect_a good_a agreement_n in_o this_o one_o article_n concern_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n may_v easy_o be_v establish_v if_o they_o can_v once_o agree_v about_o other_o article_n hitherto_o philip._n 9_o much_o like_a unto_o these_o write_v martin_n bucer_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o capito_n hedio_fw-la and_o niger_n his_o confederate_n of_o the_o church_n of_o finem_fw-la bezain_n vita_fw-la ca_n u._n anno._n 1568._o sââb_fw-la finem_fw-la argentine_n who_o be_v as_o beza_n say_v great_a favourite_n of_o calum_fw-la for_o in_o the_o same_o century_n of_o epistle_n there_o be_v one_o extant_a with_o this_o title_n martin_n bucer_n do_v testify_v his_o agreement_n in_o all_o thing_n with_o philip_n melancthon_n both_o in_o his_o own_o name_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o argentine_n and_o this_o epistle_n of_o 75._o centur._n epist_n schuneb_n epist_n 75._o bucer_n be_v next_o unto_o the_o foresay_a epistle_n of_o philip_n melancthon_n 10._o moreover_o in_o this_o very_a epistle_n when_o bucer_n treat_v of_o this_o ecclesiastical_a monarchy_n the_o which_o he_o call_v policy_n he_o write_v thus_o but_o we_o desire_v nothing_o less_o than_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n shall_v want_v her_o policy_n or_o authority_n to_o command_v no_o where_o shall_v thing_n be_v do_v in_o better_a and_o more_o certain_a order_n no_o where_o shall_v the_o obedience_n be_v great_a the_o subjection_n more_o perfect_a the_o reverend_a respect_n of_o authority_n more_o religious_o observe_v but_o now_o the_o outward_a power_n whatsoever_o it_o be_v be_v of_o god_n and_o he_o resist_v god_n ordination_n who_o be_v not_o obedient_a unto_o this_o final_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o same_o epistle_n thus_o he_o conclude_v we_o will_v therefore_o in_o no_o sort_n hinder_v the_o small_a and_o perfect_a agreement_n of_o church_n the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o the_o other_o bishop_n may_v lawful_o keep_v their_o authority_n yea_o and_o their_o domination_n also_o let_v they_o use_v their_o authority_n only_o to_o the_o edification_n and_o not_o to_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o church_n see_v that_o there_o be_v no_o authority_n at_o all_o the_o which_o we_o do_v not_o account_v holy_a and_o we_o teach_v the_o same_o unto_o they_o we_o seek_v for_o nothing_o so_o diligent_o as_o for_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n hitherto_o bucer_n with_o his_o companion_n who_o do_v evident_o foresee_v that_o neither_o any_o good_a agreement_n in_o doctrine_n nor_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n can_v continue_v any_o long_a time_n without_o one_o supreme_a head_n and_o monarch_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n 11._o final_o now_o also_o as_o many_o of_o our_o adversary_n as_o have_v any_o experience_n in_o matter_n of_o policy_n and_o be_v well_o affect_v towards_o the_o monarchy_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n do_v willing_o acknowledge_v that_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v one_o supreme_a bishop_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o that_o this_o be_v to_o be_v âustly_o grant_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n if_o we_o can_v once_o agree_v among_o ourselves_o about_o other_o matter_n in_o controversy_n for_o they_o see_v very_o well_o that_o all_o those_o argument_n whereby_o the_o monarchy_n of_o secular_a king_n and_o prince_n be_v establish_v do_v prove_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n also_o the_o ecclesiastical_a monarchy_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n all_o those_o argument_n which_o do_v impugue_n the_o ecclesiastical_a monarcy_n do_v no_o less_o overthrow_v the_o temporal_a monarchy_n of_o all_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n chap._n viii_o wherein_o the_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v confute_v these_o be_v the_o chief_a argument_n which_o our_o adversary_n do_v object_n against_o we_o ouâ_n of_o holy_a scripture_n the_o first_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n the_o rock_n &_o foundation_n beside_o 3._o cor._n 11._o v._n 3._o which_o no_o man_n can_v lay_v any_o other_o i_o answer_v that_o of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n there_o may_v be_v many_o head_n so_o that_o one_o be_v subject_n to_o another_o for_o the_o head_n of_o the_o woman_n be_v the_o man_n the_o head_n of_o
every_o man_n be_v christ_n and_o the_o head_n of_o christ_n be_v god_n as_o the_o apostle_n testify_v and_o so_o the_o woman_n have_v three_o head_n her_o husband_n christ_n and_o god_n but_o each_o one_o of_o they_o be_v subject_a unto_o another_o so_o s._n peter_n or_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o under_o christ_n and_o subject_a unto_o he_o because_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n 22._o ephes_n 1._o v._n 22._o of_o s._n peter_n and_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n moreouâr_n christ_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n aswell_o present_a as_o to_o come_v aswell_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o of_o other_o new_a but_o s._n peter_n or_o his_o successor_n be_v only_a head_n of_o the_o church_n in_o this_o world_n and_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n only_o hereupon_o say_v 18._o matt._n 16._o v._n 18._o christ_n upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o be_v then_o to_o be_v build_v 2._o yea_o even_o by_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o head_n we_o way_n gather_v very_o well_o that_o beside_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n aswell_o visible_a as_o invisible_a as_o the_o apostle_n say_v there_o be_v also_o another_o visible_a head_n of_o 22._o ephes_n 1._o v._n 22._o the_o visible_a church_n for_o otherwise_o it_o be_v a_o monster_n because_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o visible_a body_n without_o a_o visible_a head_n it_o be_v necessary_a therefore_o that_o beside_o a_o invisible_a head_n which_o be_v christ_n there_o be_v also_o a_o visible_a head_n in_o the_o visible_a church_n to_o wit_n s._n peter_n successor_n 3._o furthermore_o the_o action_n which_o christ_n exercise_v in_o his_o church_n be_v of_o two_o kind_n some_o be_v invisible_a as_o our_o vocation_n justification_n &_o sanctification_n etc._n etc._n and_o these_o christ_n exercise_v and_o do_v by_o himself_o some_o other_o action_n be_v visible_a as_o to_o preach_v administer_v sacrament_n and_o to_o govern_v visible_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n these_o christ_n do_v not_o exercise_n by_o himself_o alone_o but_o also_o by_o visible_a man_n which_o represent_v his_o person_n wherefore_o even_o as_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v say_v true_o to_o baptize_v any_o unless_o there_o be_v sâme_v visible_a man_n who_o in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n shall_v visible_o baptize_v neither_o can_v he_o be_v say_v true_o to_o govern_v visible_o every_o particular_a church_n unless_o in_o each_o of_o they_o some_o particular_a person_n do_v visible_o govern_v in_o christ_n steed_n so_o also_o neither_o shall_v christ_n be_v say_v true_o to_o govern_v visible_o the_o whole_a church_n unless_o there_o be_v some_o one_o who_o in_o his_o person_n may_v visible_o govern_v the_o whole_a church_n but_o this_o person_n can_v be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 4._o and_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v â1_n 1._o cor._n 3._o v._n â1_n before_o of_o the_o hâad_n be_v also_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o rock_n and_o foundation_n for_o christ_n be_v indeed_o the_o chief_a foundation_n of_o all_o true_a believer_n but_o the_o secondary_a 20._o ephes_n 2._o â_o 20._o and_o subordinate_a foundation_n unto_o christ_n be_v also_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n as_o the_o apostle_n express_o say_v to_o the_o ephesian_n and_o caluin_n also_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v most_o true_a but_o if_o the_o doctrine_n 2._o calu._n ibid._n &_o l._n 1._o inst_z cap._n 7._o sect_n 2._o of_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v also_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n why_o shall_v not_o also_o s._n peter_n doctrine_n be_v the_o same_o for_o when_o we_o say_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n by_o s._n peter_n we_o do_v understand_v not_o his_o person_n only_o but_o also_o his_o doctrine_n preach_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 5._o moreover_o see_v that_o s._n john_n in_o his_o apocalyps_n say_v that_o the_o city_n of_o god_n have_v 14_o apocal._n 21._o v._o 14_o twelve_o foundation_n and_o in_o they_o twelve_o name_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n of_o the_o lamb_n what_o marvel_n be_v it_o if_o s._n peter_n the_o first_o of_o the_o apostle_n be_v call_v a_o rock_n or_o foundation_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n 6._o and_o here_o it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o when_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o foundation_n beside_o christ_n this_o word_n beside_o have_v the_o same_o signification_n 11._o 1._o cor._n v._n 11._o that_o contrary_a or_o against_o have_v as_o appeareth_z by_o many_o other_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n for_o otherwise_o all_o the_o apostle_n be_v call_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o but_o they_o be_v not_o contrary_a or_o against_o christ_n but_o under_o 1._o supra_fw-la cap._n 35._o §._o 2._o cotr._fw-la 1._o christ_n and_o subject_a unto_o he_o 7._o final_o if_o we_o examine_v more_o exact_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o those_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n it_o will_v appear_v manifest_o 11._o 1._o contr._n 3._o v._o 11._o that_o our_o adversary_n wrest_v the_o say_a word_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o a_o contrary_a sense_n and_o meaning_n for_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o whole_a build_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n whereof_o 11._o â_o cor._n 3._o v._n 11._o only_o be_v our_o present_a controversy_n but_o of_o the_o foundation_n of_o particular_a &_o private_a action_n of_o every_o true_a believer_n for_o s._n paul_n manifest_o write_v that_o he_o lay_v that_o foundotion_n whereof_o he_o speak_v &_o that_o every_o one_o build_v his_o own_o proper_a work_n upon_o this_o foundation_n but_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n among_o these_o foundation_n because_o here_o christ_n himself_o be_v the_o who_o make_v &_o ordain_v s._n peter_n to_o be_v a_o foundation_n i_o say_v 18._o matt._n 16._o v._n 18._o unto_o thou_o say_v christ_n to_o s._n peter_n that_o thou_o be_v cephas_n there_o s._n paul_n be_v he_o who_o together_o âaid_v that_o foundation_n whereof_o he_o speak_v as_o a_o wise_a work_n master_n say_v he_o have_v i_o lay_v the_o â0_n 1_o cor._n 3._o v._o â0_n foundation_n here_o christ_n himself_o be_v âe_v who_o build_v upon_o this_o rock_n say_v our_o lord_n i_o will_v buyld_v there_o every_o private_a man_n be_v he_o who_o buyld_v but_o let_v every_o one_o look_n say_v the_o apostle_n how_o he_o build_v thereon_o here_o 18._o matt._n 16._o v._n 18._o the_o church_n be_v that_o which_o be_v build_v thereon_o i_o will_v build_v say_v our_o lord_n my_o church_n there_o the_o work_n of_o every_o private_a man_n be_v that_o which_o be_v build_v thereon_o if_o any_o man_n work_n abide_v say_v the_o apostle_n that_o which_o he_o build_v 14._o 1._o cor._n 3._o v._n 14._o thereupon_o shall_v receive_v reward_n s._n paul_n therefore_o speak_v of_o the_o foundation_n of_o good_a work_n which_o belong_v unto_o justice_n and_o life_n everlasting_a whereof_o as_o we_o have_v say_v christ_n be_v the_o cap._n ââ_o âhuius_fw-la cap._n only_a foundation_n we_o treat_v here_o of_o the_o founddation_n of_o the_o outward_a and_o visible_a government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o doctrine_n of_o sound_a faith_n now_o s._n peter_n &_o his_o successor_n be_v such_o a_o foundation_n wherefore_o that_o which_o our_o adversary_n allege_v out_o of_o s._n paul_n do_v nothing_o concern_v this_o our_o present_a disputation_n 8._o the_o second_o argument_n s._n peter_n deny_v 25._o joan._n 18._o v._n 25._o christ_n thrice_o therefore_o be_v can_v not_o be_v the_o rock_n against_o who_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v i_o answer_v that_o when_o s._n peter_n deny_v christ_n he_o be_v not_o as_o then_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n for_o promise_n be_v make_v unto_o he_o only_o matth._n 16._o i_o will_v build_v etc._n etc._n i_o will_v give_v thou_o etc._n etc._n speak_v always_o in_o the_o future_a tense_n but_o afterward_o joan._n 21._o the_o authority_n be_v 15._o joan._n 21._o v._n 15._o actual_o give_v which_o be_v before_o promise_v unto_o he_o and_o that_o after_o that_o denial_n of_o s._n peter_n as_o also_o after_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n feed_v my_o lamb_n say_v christ_n feed_v my_o sheep_n 9_o the_o three_o argument_n after_o that_o the_o foresaid_a authority_n be_v give_v joan._n 21._o s._n peter_n be_v reprehend_v by_o s._n paul_n gal._n 2._o i_o answer_v that_o as_o witness_v tertullian_n the_o infine_v tertull._n l._n 5._o centra_fw-la maâci_fw-la c._n 3._o tertull._n de_fw-fr praesc_fw-la adversus_fw-la haeret._n c._n 23._o infine_v marcionist_n object_v this_o very_a same_o place_n against_o catholic_n unto_o who_o tertullian_n answer_v in_o
these_o word_n indeed_o say_v he_o it_o be_v a_o vice_n or_o fault_n of_o his_o conversation_n and_o not_o of_o his_o preach_n and_o he_o answer_v very_o well_o for_o s._n peter_n may_v peradventure_o they_o have_v sun_v but_o he_o can_v not_o err_v in_o faith_n because_o he_o know_v very_o well_o that_o the_o moysaicall_a law_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o the_o gentill_n neither_o do_v he_o ever_o teach_v the_o same_o to_o be_v necessary_a yea_o when_o there_o arise_v any_o controversy_n about_o this_o matter_n he_o manifest_o teach_v that_o the_o gentill_n be_v not_o oblige_v by_o it_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n wherefore_o if_o s._n peter_n offend_v in_o any_o thing_n it_o be_v a_o sin_n of_o his_o 13._o act._n 15._o v._n 10._o &_o 11_o âell_o l._n 1._o de_fw-fr ronvere_n pont._n c._n ult._n infine_v baron_n tom._n 1._o a_o 5_o &_o 52._o â_o seq_fw-fr 1_o cor._n 1_o v._n 13._o 1._o cor._n 1._o v._n 13._o conversation_n and_o not_o of_o his_o preach_n &_o doctrine_n whereof_o we_o now_o only_o dispute_v albeit_o there_o be_v many_o who_o think_v that_o s._n peter_n do_v not_o offend_v at_o all_o in_o any_o respect_n of_o who_o see_v bellarmine_n and_o baronius_n 10._o the_o four_o argument_n s._n paul_n reprehend_v those_o that_o say_v they_o belong_v to_o s._n peter_n i_o answer_v that_o those_o man_n divide_v christ_n from_o s._n peter_n and_o s._n paul_n and_o they_o oppose_v they_o against_o christ_n as_o eqall_n unto_o he_o make_v they_o as_o it_o be_v so_o many_o christ_n the_o which_o s._n paul_n declare_v in_o these_o word_n be_v christ_n divide_v moreover_o they_o attribute_v to_o s._n peter_n and_o s._n paul_n the_o internal_a and_o invisible_a gift_n of_o 13_o 1._o cor._n 1._o v._n 13_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o effect_n of_o the_o sacrament_n yea_o and_o our_o redemption_n also_o no_o otherwise_o then_o they_o do_v unto_o christ_n hence_o be_v those_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n in_o the_o same_o place_n why_o be_v paul_n crucify_v for_o you_o or_o be_v you_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o paul_n 11._o but_o we_o teach_v that_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n be_v inferior_a and_o not_o equal_a unto_o christ_n whereupon_o he_o be_v also_o call_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n as_o subject_v unto_o he_o and_o not_o divide_v from_o he_o moreover_o we_o teach_v that_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o give_v the_o inward_a and_o spiritual_a gift_n of_o faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n but_o he_o be_v only_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o exterior_a government_n of_o the_o church_n 12._o the_o first_o argument_n the_o apostle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n and_o ephesian_n do_v recount_v diverse_a office_n of_o the_o church_n and_o 11._o 1._o cor._n 1._o v._n 18._o eâbes_n 4._o v._n 11._o yet_o he_o say_v nothing_o of_o s_n peter_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o the_o apostle_n make_v any_o mention_n of_o s._n peter_n in_o every_o place_n for_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o in_o some_o one_o place_n or_o other_o he_o have_v evident_o declare_v that_o s._n peter_n be_v a_o chief_a member_n of_o the_o chârch_n the_o which_o he_o do_v when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o come_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o see_v s._n peter_n and_o tarry_v with_o he_o fifteen_o 18._o gal._n 1_o v._n 18._o day_n 13._o furthermore_o in_o these_o very_a place_n he_o manifest_o make_v mention_n of_o s._n peter_n for_o every_o where_o he_o put_v the_o apostle_n in_o the_o first_o place_n and_o all_o christian_n know_v well_o enough_o that_o s._n peter_n be_v chief_a of_o all_o the_o apostle_n according_a to_o that_o of_o s._n matthew_n the_o first_o simon_n who_o be_v call_v peter_n here_o upon_o say_v s._n augustin_n who_o know_v not_o that_o s._n peter_n be_v the_o chief_a of_o the_o apostle_n 14._o final_o the_o apostle_n himself_o do_v not_o indeed_o speak_v in_o these_o place_n of_o the_o ordinary_a ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n but_o of_o those_o extraordinary_a gift_n which_o be_v give_v to_o the_o member_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o he_o recount_v there_o also_o the_o evangelist_n prophet_n the_o grace_n of_o do_v cure_n or_o help_n kind_n of_o tongue_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v certain_o extraordinary_a gift_n as_o s._n chrâsostome_n theophilactus_fw-la oecumenius_n and_o other_o expound_v these_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v well_o note_v 15._o the_o sixth_o argument_n many_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v wicked_a bad_a man_n and_o give_v to_o many_o kind_n of_o sin_n as_o all_o even_o catholic_a writer_n do_v testify_v as_o therefore_o they_o have_v grievous_o err_v in_o manner_n so_o they_o may_v also_o err_v in_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v 51._o s._n aug._n tom._n 2._o epist_n 165._o ad_fw-la gener._n &_o tun_n 7._o contr_n literas_fw-la petil._n donatist_n âib_n 2._o c._n 5._o 6._o &_o 51._o in_o time_n past_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o donatist_n against_o catholic_n whereunto_o s._n augustine_n have_v often_o answer_v for_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o their_o conversation_n and_o doctrine_n because_o a_o error_n commit_v in_o our_o manner_n of_o conversation_n only_o hurt_v he_o which_o err_v but_o a_o error_n in_o doctrine_n be_v also_o hurtful_a to_o many_o other_o yea_o even_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n hence_o proceed_v proceed_v that_o admonition_n of_o christ_n all_o thing_n therefore_o whatsoever_o they_o shall_v say_v to_o you_o observe_v you_o and_o do_v you_o but_o according_a to_o their_o work_n do_v you_o not_o caluin_n also_o refute_v this_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n more_o at_o length_n as_o the_o foolish_a invention_n or_o dream_n of_o the_o anabaptiste_n for_o he_o know_v very_o well_o that_o among_o his_o minister_n there_o be_v many_o most_o wicked_a ungodly_a man_n wherefore_o it_o be_v very_o strange_a that_o his_o follower_n will_v repeat_v and_o inculcate_v this_o argument_n so_o often_o 16._o our_o adversary_n have_v many_o other_o argument_n beside_o these_o which_o need_v no_o confutation_n for_o they_o be_v not_o take_v out_o or_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o all_o do_v rely_v and_o be_v ground_v upon_o lie_n and_o mere_a fable_n forge_v by_o ancient_a heretic_n or_o schismatic_n or_o at_o the_o jest_n by_o such_o as_o be_v no_o favourit_n nor_o well-willer_n to_o the_o 4._o saunder_n l._n 7._o citat_fw-la baron_fw-fr in_fw-la omnibus_fw-la 12._o âon_v 2._o tim._n 4._o v._n 4._o church_n of_o rome_n the_o which_o doctor_n sanders_n and_o cardinal_n baronius_n prosecute_v particular_o throughput_n all_o age_n wherefore_o that_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v very_o well_o agree_v to_o our_o adversary_n and_o from_o the_o truth_n certes_o they_o will_v averse_v their_o hear_n and_o to_o sable_n they_o will_v be_v convert_v 17._o we_o will_v here_o allege_v one_o most_o certain_a example_n of_o those_o slander_n the_o 18._o calu_n l._n 4._o inst_z c._n 7._o sect_n 18._o which_o our_o adversary_n cast_v against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o that_o we_o may_v also_o omit_v that_o caluin_n in_o few_o word_n have_v no_o less_o than_o five_o manifest_a lie_n of_o one_o only_a bishop_n of_o rome_n john_n 22._o as_o bellarmine_n clear_o prove_v the_o same_o caluin_n true_o have_v forge_v three_o most_o famous_a and_o markable_a lie_n against_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o 3_o bellarm._n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr ronvere_n pont_n cap._n 14._o come_v agit_fw-fr de_fw-fr loan_n papa_n calu._n lib._n 4._o inst_z c._n 7._o sect_n 27._o s._n aug._n tom._n 7._o deunitate_fw-la eccles_n c._n 2._o &_o 3_o rome_n for_o he_o say_v that_o these_o be_v the_o three_o principle_n article_n of_o that_o divinity_n which_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o bishop_n and_o cardinal_n of_o rome_n first_o that_o there_o be_v no_o god_n the_o second_o that_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v &_o teach_v concern_v christ_n be_v lie_n and_o sable_n the_o three_o that_o there_o be_v no_o lyse_v after_o this_o 18._o but_o that_o one_o answer_v which_o s._n augustine_n give_v the_o donatist_n slander_v wrongful_o catholic_n in_o time_n past_a may_v suffice_v to_o confute_v all_o these_o reproachful_a and_o injurious_a lie_n of_o our_o present_a adversary_n let_v we_o not_o hear_v say_v he_o what_o this_o or_o that_o man_n say_v but_o what_o our_o lord_n say_v let_v we_o not_o hâere_o this_o say_v i_o thus_o say_v thou_o but_o thus_o say_v our_o lord_n and_o what_o the_o holy_a scripture_n say_v unto_o we_o concern_v the_o church_n 19_o moreover_o that_o which_o in_o general_a 12._o s._n aug._n tom._n 7._o de_fw-la unitate_fw-la eccles_n c._n 12._o the_o same_o holy_a father_n in_o another_o place_n say_v against_o the_o lie_n of_o the_o donatist_n may_v now_o
or_o marrow_n not_o in_o the_o leauâs_n of_o the_o word_n but_o in_o the_o sappeâpâth_n or_o root_v os_fw-la reason_n and_o a_o little_a after_o otherwise_o 6._o matt._n 4._o v._n 6._o even_o the_o devil_n himself_o speak_v scripture_n and_o all_o heresy_n according_a to_o ezechiel_n make_v unto_o themselves_o pillow_n which_o they_o may_v lay_v under_o the_o elbow_n oâ_n every_o age_n 18._o ezec._n 13._o v._o 18._o 2._o by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v answer_n may_v be_v make_v to_o our_o adversary_n when_o they_o object_n against_o we_o that_o we_o affirm_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v imperfect_a obscure_a like_o a_o nose_n of_o wax_n which_o a_o man_n may_v writhe_v which_o way_n he_o will_v and_o last_o the_o origin_n and_o spring_n in_o a_o manner_n of_o all_o heresy_n for_o we_o affirm_v this_o of_o the_o naked_a and_o dead_a letter_n alone_o destitute_a of_o the_o true_a sense_n or_o rather_o of_o the_o letter_n to_o which_o the_o heretic_n add_v their_o own_o perverse_a sense_n and_o meaning_n neither_o have_v our_o adversary_n any_o cause_n to_o wonder_v at_o this_o see_v s._n paul_n himself_o say_v of_o the_o bare_a letter_n alone_o that_o it_o kill_v and_o bring_v eternal_a death_n 9_o 1._o cor._n â_o v._o 6._o 7._o &_o 9_o and_o damnation_n but_o never_o any_o catholic_a do_v ever_o attribute_v any_o such_o thing_n to_o the_o live_a letter_n which_o have_v conjoin_v with_o it_o the_o true_a and_o native_a sense_n and_o which_o alone_o be_v true_o and_o proper_o the_o word_n of_o god_n chap._n four_o how_o we_o be_v to_o seek_v out_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n there_o be_v great_a contention_n beweene_v we_o and_o our_o adversary_n about_o the_o mean_n how_o to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a and_o natural_a interpretation_n of_o the_o letter_n a_o thing_n so_o necessary_a to_o eternal_a salvation_n they_o teach_v diverse_a thing_n concern_v this_o matter_n but_o deliver_v nothing_o that_o be_v certain_a one_o assign_v more_o rule_n to_o this_o purpose_n another_o few_o but_o when_o they_o have_v say_v all_o they_o confess_v at_o last_o that_o there_o be_v never_o any_o which_o have_v not_o at_o sometime_o err_v in_o seek_v out_o the_o true_a interpretation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n for_o they_o gyve_v not_o their_o assent_n either_o to_o the_o ancient_a father_n or_o to_o their_o own_o master_n in_o all_o thing_n they_o teach_v or_o write_v nay_o they_o can_v assign_v any_o one_o who_o they_o acknowledge_v not_o to_o have_v err_v sometime_o nor_o dare_v affirm_v to_o be_v free_a from_o error_n see_v as_o they_o say_v every_o man_n be_v a_o liar_n and_o so_o at_o last_o all_o 4._o rom._n 3._o v._n 4._o thing_n be_v leave_v by_o they_o doubtful_a and_o uncertain_a 2._o but_o the_o catholic_n do_v proceed_v after_o another_o manner_n who_o teach_v that_o the_o certain_a &_o undoubted_a sense_n of_o the_o letter_n be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o judgement_n of_o any_o particular_a man_n but_o from_o the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o especial_o from_o the_o judgement_n and_o interpretation_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o who_o it_o appertain_v to_o judge_v of_o the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o the_o holy_a and_o ecumenical_a council_n of_o trent_n teach_v very_o well_o for_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n 4._o council_n trident._n sess_v 4._o but_o that_o it_o be_v more_o safe_a to_o follow_v such_o a_o interpreter_n as_o can_v err_v than_o such_o a_o one_o as_o err_v sometime_o or_o at_o leastwise_o may_v err_v but_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o her_o judgement_n see_v that_o christ_n and_o the_o âoly_a ghost_n remain_v with_o she_o to_o teach_v 13._o matt._n 28._o c_o ult._n joan._n 14_o v._n 16._o âoan_n 16._o v._n 13._o âer_o all_o truth_n whereof_o more_o hereafter_o when_o we_o shall_v come_v to_o treat_v of_o the_o church_n 3._o it_o shall_v suffice_v to_o observe_v and_o âote_v here_o that_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o adversary_n nothing_o either_o solid_a or_o certain_a be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n for_o whereas_o all_o depend_v of_o the_o ârue_a sense_n of_o the_o letter_n and_o with_o they_o âhere_o be_v no_o certain_a or_o sure_a mean_n by_o which_o to_o find_v out_o this_o sense_n it_o follow_v âhat_n they_o call_v all_o into_o doubt_n which_o be_v in_o âhe_n scripture_n whereby_o who_o see_v not_o how_o much_o they_o injure_v they_o but_o contrariâyse_n according_a to_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n all_o thing_n be_v evident_a and_o certain_a which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n appertain_v either_o to_o faith_n or_o good_a manner_n the_o catholic_n have_v ever_o a_o certain_a and_o faithful_a interpreter_n to_o wit_n the_o catholic_a church_n and_o sure_o whosoever_o reject_v the_o sense_n which_o the_o church_n give_v and_o in_o place_n thereof_o substitute_v another_o altogether_o repugnant_a to_o it_o do_v all_o one_o with_o he_o who_o reject_v the_o holy_a scripture_n shall_v in_o place_n thereof_o bring_v in_o a_o new_a scripture_n of_o his_o own_o forge_n the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v no_o less_o a_o part_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n than_o the_o letter_n which_o in_o these_o few_o word_n tertullian_n confirm_v out_o of_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n the_o sense_n adulterate_v or_o falsify_v be_v no_o less_o repugnant_a 17._o tertul._n de_fw-fr prâsc_fw-la c._n 17._o to_o the_o truth_n than_o the_o letter_n or_o style_v corrupt_v 4._o and_o to_o conclude_v it_o may_v be_v infer_v that_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n only_o and_o none_o at_o all_o out_o 9_o marc._n ult._n vers_fw-la 16._o âom_n 3._o v._n 1â_n heb._n ââ_o v._o 9_o of_o it_o which_o i_o prove_v thus_o both_o the_o scripture_n testify_v &_o all_o man_n confess_v that_o divine_a faith_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o such_o as_o forsake_v the_o roman_a church_n can_v have_v divine_a faith_n which_o whole_o rely_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n only_o but_o mere_o humane_a see_v their_o faith_n be_v found_v not_o in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n interpret_v by_o the_o church_n which_o can_v errâ_n but_o in_o the_o word_n and_o interpretation_n of_o luther_n &_o caluin_n or_o some_o other_o private_a man_n who_o as_o they_o themselves_o grant_v may_v err_v and_o be_v deceive_v such_o a_o humane_a faith_n then_o so_o doubtful_a and_o uncertain_a and_o only_o warrant_v by_o man_n authority_n can_v justify_v or_o bring_v a_o man_n to_o eternal_a salvation_n chap._n v._o how_o we_o may_v know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a letter_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n all_o such_o as_o forsake_v the_o roman_a church_n and_o make_v little_a account_n of_o her_o authority_n be_v not_o only_o doubtful_a &_o uncertain_a which_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o they_o can_v have_v no_o assurance_n at_o all_o either_o of_o the_o whole_a or_o of_o any_o part_n of_o the_o letter_n thereof_o for_o whilst_o they_o go_v about_o to_o call_v in_o question_n and_o make_v doubtful_a certain_a book_n only_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n before_o they_o be_v aware_a they_o take_v away_o all_o authority_n from_o all_o other_o book_n both_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n for_o whereas_o there_o be_v but_o one_o certain_a and_o undoubted_a canon_n of_o these_o book_n to_o wit_n that_o which_o be_v receive_v and_o approve_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o can_v err_v our_o adversary_n reject_v this_o canon_n make_v all_o the_o book_n doubtful_a contain_v therein_o for_o no_o certain_a testimony_n can_v be_v have_v of_o these_o book_n but_o either_o by_o this_o canon_n only_o or_o by_o the_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n but_o they_o neither_o admit_v this_o canon_n nor_o will_v stand_v to_o this_o unwritten_a tradition_n or_o acknowledge_v it_o for_o the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n 2._o now_o as_o for_o the_o canon_n late_o set_v out_o by_o themselves_o no_o man_n can_v safe_o believe_v they_o see_v they_o neither_o agree_v one_o with_o another_o nor_o with_o the_o ancient_a canon_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o be_v any_o where_o find_v in_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n which_o as_o they_o teach_v be_v only_o to_o be_v believe_v neither_o can_v they_o bring_v any_o thing_n either_o concern_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o hebrew_n or_o any_o other_o ancient_a canon_n which_o they_o have_v not_o take_v from_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n who_o authority_n without_o the_o express_v write_v word_n of_o god_n they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v in_o no_o wise_a sufficient_a to_o engender_v faith_n so_o as_o even_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o adversary_n none_o of_o all_o these_o
true_a sense_n of_o these_o word_n ipsa_fw-la conteret_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o we_o may_v find_v out_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o these_o word_n we_o must_v first_o resute_n the_o false_a exposition_n of_o our_o adversary_n the_o lutheran_n by_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n will_v needs_o have_v christ_n only_o to_o be_v mean_v we_o confess_v in_o deed_n that_o he_o be_v principal_o mean_v thereby_o and_o that_o therefore_o the_o place_n may_v be_v well_o understand_v of_o christ_n as_o many_o ancient_a father_n have_v expound_v it_o but_o that_o christ_n alone_o be_v mean_v hereby_o and_o not_o his_o member_n we_o deny_v to_o be_v the_o literal_a sense_n for_o the_o reason_n follow_v 2._o first_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o serpent_n which_o be_v oppose_v against_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n do_v not_o signify_v any_o one_o serpent_n but_o a_o multitude_n it_o be_v therefore_o very_o probable_a that_o by_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n a_o multitude_n also_o be_v signify_v unless_o we_o will_v have_v the_o scripture_n in_o so_o few_o word_n speak_v ambiguous_o moreover_o seman_n be_v a_o noun_n collective_a proper_o signify_v a_o multitude_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n in_o this_o sentence_n that_o force_v we_o to_o depart_v from_o the_o proper_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n this_o reason_n be_v of_o so_o great_a a_o force_n that_o caluin_n be_v move_v thereby_o to_o forsake_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o lutheran_n which_o he_o will_v otherwise_o willing_o have_v embrace_v the_o more_o strong_o to_o assault_v we_o for_o thus_o he_o write_v some_o make_v no_o doubt_n but_o christ_n alone_o be_v âit_n calu._n in_o gen._n loco_fw-la âit_n mean_v by_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n who_o exposition_n i_o can_v willing_o approve_v but_o that_o i_o see_v they_o offer_v too_o great_a violence_n to_o the_o word_n seed_n for_o who_o will_v grant_v that_o a_o noun_n collective_a be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o one_o man_n only_o thus_o caluin_n so_o strong_a be_v the_o truth_n that_o it_o extort_v a_o true_a confession_n from_o her_o great_a enemy_n 3_o second_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n that_o it_o shall_v crush_v and_o bruise_v the_o head_n of_o the_o serpent_n but_o this_o crush_a and_o bruise_v the_o scripture_n do_v not_o attribute_n to_o christ_n alone_o but_o to_o all_o that_o lead_v a_o godly_a life_n in_o he_o for_o to_o every_o just_a man_n the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v say_v thou_o thalt_v walk_v over_o the_o addar_fw-la and_o basilisk_n and_o thou_o 13._o psal_n 90._o five_o 13._o shall_v tread_v under_o thy_o foot_n the_o lion_n and_o the_o dragon_n and_o christ_n say_v unto_o his_o disciple_n behold_v i_o have_v give_v you_o power_n to_o tread_v upon_o the_o serpent_n and_o scorpion_n and_o upon_o all_o the_o power_n of_o 19_o luc._n 10._o v._n 19_o the_o enemy_n and_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o roman_n pray_v say_v the_o god_n of_o peace_n cruâh_v satan_n under_o your_o foot_n quick_o and_o last_o in_o very_a many_o place_n of_o scripture_n the_o faithful_a 20._o rom._n 16._o v._n 20._o be_v say_v to_o overcome_v the_o devil_n and_o to_o get_v victory_n against_o he_o which_o be_v all_o one_o as_o to_o crush_v he_o see_v therefore_o the_o proper_a work_n of_o this_o seed_n agree_v also_o 57_o 1._o joan._n 2._o v._n 13._o apoc._n 12._o v._o 11._o 1._o cor._n 15._o v._n 57_o to_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n the_o word_n seed_n be_v not_o to_o be_v limit_v to_o christ_n alone_o ad_fw-la hereunto_o that_o god_n in_o these_o word_n intend_v to_o comfort_v not_o only_a eve_n deceive_v by_o the_o craft_n of_o the_o devil_n but_o all_o her_o posterity_n now_o the_o comfort_n be_v more_o general_a if_o all_o the_o faithful_a shall_v be_v able_a by_o christ_n to_o overcome_v the_o devil_n thân_o if_o that_o christ_n alone_o shall_v overcome_v he_o even_o as_o our_o comfort_n be_v great_a that_o we_o together_o with_o christ_n shall_v rise_v again_o then_o if_o christ_n only_o shall_v rise_v and_o be_v alonâ_n attain_v to_o eternal_a life_n 4_o three_o albeit_o we_o shall_v grant_v our_o adversary_n that_o christ_n alone_o do_v crush_v the_o head_n of_o the_o devil_n which_o be_v the_o former_a part_n of_o the_o sentence_n yet_o the_o latter_a part_n can_v by_o no_o mean_n bâ_n apply_v to_o christ_n alone_o where_o it_o say_v that_o the_o devil_n shall_v crush_v this_o seed_n for_o christ_n in_o his_o own_o person_n can_v be_v crush_v by_o the_o devil_n we_o must_v therefore_o needs_o by_o this_o seed_n understand_v also_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n for_o in_o the_o hebrew_n text_n it_o be_v thus_o word_n for_o word_n ipsa_fw-la vel_fw-la ipsum_fw-la conteret_fw-la tâ_n in_fw-la capite_fw-la &_o ââââteres_fw-la âum_fw-la uâleaâ_n in_o calcâââ_n for_o the_o hebrew_n word_n be_v the_o same_o in_o both_o place_n both_o in_o the_o first_o and_o in_o the_o late_a part_n of_o the_o sentence_n and_o signifi_v contrayre_o 5._o as_o for_o caluins_n exposition_n interpret_n 2._o in_o gen._n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la lib._n 1._o instit_fw-la c._n 13._o sect_n 2._o by_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n all_o mankind_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v receive_v for_o god_n in_o this_o place_n denounce_v enmity_n between_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o serpent_n and_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n but_o infidel_n and_o ungoodly_a person_n have_v no_o enmity_n with_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o seed_n but_o be_v rather_o the_o seed_n and_o son_n of_o the_o devil_n according_a to_o those_o word_n of_o christ_n yââ_n be_v of_o your_o father_n the_o devil_n they_o therefore_o can_v appertain_v to_o this_o seed_n 44._o joan._n 8._o v._n 44._o of_o the_o woman_n 6._o but_o whereas_o caluin_n in_o another_o place_n say_v that_o christ_n and_o his_o member_n be_v signify_v by_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n we_o 18._o calu._n l._n 1._o instit_fw-la c._n 14_o sect_n 18._o like_v well_o of_o that_o his_o say_n for_o it_o be_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o catholic_a and_o ancient_a father_n and_o indeed_o the_o true_a literal_a sense_n 7._o for_o in_o that_o sentence_n god_n say_v first_o that_o he_o will_v put_v enmity_n wherefore_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o any_o natural_a enmity_n ââ_o caluin_n insinuate_v but_o of_o a_o supper_n natural_a proceed_n from_o god_n moreover_o god_n signifi_v between_o who_o this_o enmity_n shall_v be_v to_o wiâ_n between_o the_o serpent_n and_o womaâ_n now_o as_o by_o the_o serpent_n the_o devil_n be_v mean_v who_o that_o natural_a serpent_n represent_v and_o in_o who_o god_n lay_v his_o curse_n upon_o the_o devil_n so_o by_o the_o woman_n eâe_v be_v mean_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n or_o his_o true_a church_n represent_v by_o eâe_n who_o force_n and_o victory_n against_o the_o devil_n be_v therefore_o foretell_v by_o god_n for_o that_o eve_n represent_v the_o 3_o eph._n 5._o v._n 32._o 2._o cor._n 11._o v._n 2._o &_o 3_o church_n as_o adam_n do_v christ_n the_o apostle_n plain_o teach_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephes_n and_o the_o same_o apostle_n do_v therefore_o elsewhere_o expound_v this_o place_n of_o satan_n and_o the_o church_n as_o do_v s._n john_n in_o his_o apocalypse_n 17._o apoc._n 1â_n v._o 13._o 17._o where_o he_o declare_v this_o enmity_n between_o the_o woman_n and_o the_o serpent_n to_o be_v indeed_o the_o enmity_n between_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o devil_n wherefore_o here_o by_o the_o serpent_n be_v signify_v the_o devil_n by_o the_o woman_n the_o church_n by_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o serpent_n the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o all_o the_o wicked_a who_o be_v alien_n from_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n but_o especial_o such_o as_o seduce_v other_o and_o 17._o mat._n 1â_n v_o â8_o apoc._n ââ_o v._o 17._o oppugn_v the_o church_n the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o church_n especial_o such_o as_o keep_v god_n commaundment_n and_o have_v the_o testimony_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o s._n john_n speak_v 8._o furthermore_o this_o woman_n to_o wit_v the_o church_n shall_v crush_v the_o head_n of_o the_o serpent_n as_o we_o have_v prove_v by_o many_o place_n of_o 20._o psal_n 90._o v._o 1â_n luc._n 10._o v._n 19_o rom._n 16._o v._n 20._o scripture_n but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o woman_n heelâ_n shall_v be_v crush_v by_o satan_n for_o the_o church_n overcom_v the_o devil_n by_o her_o chief_a and_o more_o excellent_a member_n but_o she_o be_v overcome_v in_o such_o her_o member_n as_o be_v base_a and_o worldly_a give_v which_o set_v up_o their_o rest_n here_o upon_o earth_n and_o taste_v no_o other_o thing_n but_o such_o as_o be_v terrene_a &_o earthly_a worthy_o therefore_o signify_v by_o 7._o defuga_fw-la saec_fw-la c._n 7._o the_o heel_n
of_o the_o church_n let_v we_o not_o therefore_o say_v s._n ambrose_n walk_v by_o love_n and_o affection_n upon_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o serpent_n can_v hurt_v us._n in_o the_o first_o combat_n be_v that_o the_o church_n overcome_v by_o open_a war_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v express_v by_o crush_a of_o the_o head_n in_o the_o late_a combat_n in_o which_o a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v overcome_v the_o enemy_n proceed_v by_o guile_n and_o deceit_n and_o therefore_o that_o combat_n be_v signify_v by_o crush_a the_o heel_n for_o the_o hebrew_n word_n signify_v calcaneum_fw-la do_v signify_v also_o proper_o insidiari_fw-la gen._n olea_v iâ_n c._n 3._o gen._n &_o ex_fw-la insidijâ_n aggredi_fw-la as_o appear_v by_o many_o place_n of_o scripture_n and_o out_o of_o ignorance_n hereof_o caluin_n without_o cause_n reprehend_v the_o vulgar_a interpreter_n for_o otherwise_o explicate_v this_o combat_n in_o the_o late_a part_n of_o the_o sentence_n than_o he_o have_v in_o the_o formeâ_n for_o the_o emphasis_n or_o force_v of_o the_o hebrew_n word_n require_v that_o he_o shall_v interpret_v the_o late_a part_n as_o he_o do_v by_o these_o word_n tu_fw-la insidiabâris_fw-la calcanâââius_fw-la which_o be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v as_o thou_o shall_v crush_v her_o heel_n not_o by_o open_a war_n but_o by_o take_v she_o at_o unaware_o see_v further_o of_o this_o matter_n in_o this_o chapter_n in_o the_o latin_a edition_n the_o 8._o â_o and_o you_o shall_v see_v that_o our_o adversary_n make_v a_o great_a ado_n about_o a_o matter_n of_o small_a moment_n if_o the_o word_n be_v right_o understand_v for_o whether_o we_o read_v ipsa_fw-la and_o so_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o church_n or_o ipsum_fw-la that_o it_o may_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o child_n of_o the_o church_n the_o sense_n be_v all_o one_o for_o it_o be_v all_o on_o to_o say_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n shall_v crush_v the_o heââ_n of_o the_o serpent_n or_o the_o child_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v do_v it_o and_o heerehence_a it_o be_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n whether_o they_o read_v ipse_fw-la as_o s._n hierome_n and_o s._n chrysostome_n do_v or_o ipse_fw-la 38._o high_a in_o tradit_fw-la hebr._n hom._n 17._o in_o gen._n amb._n de_fw-fr fug_fw-mi â_o saec_fw-la e._n 7._o greg._n in_o job._n c._n 38._o as_o read_v s._n ambrose_n s._n augustine_n s._n gregory_n and_o other_o latin_a father_n all_o of_o they_o expound_v this_o place_n of_o the_o church_n 9_o howsoever_o it_o be_v the_o reading_z of_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o other_o for_o this_o victory_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o church_n as_o to_o the_o mother_n of_o all_o the_o faithful_a and_o to_o she_o who_o continue_v for_o ever_o according_a to_o that_o promise_n of_o christ_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o then_o to_o her_o child_n or_o member_n which_o be_v every_o day_n change_v for_o this_o promise_n be_v a_o explication_n of_o the_o promise_n make_v by_o god_n in_o genesis_n for_o the_o head_n of_o the_o serpent_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n signify_v 18._o mat._n 16._o v._n 18._o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o if_o the_o victory_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o woman_n that_o be_v to_o the_o church_n all_o thing_n be_v better_o explicate_v for_o god_n first_o do_v foretell_v the_o enmity_n that_o be_v to_o be_v between_o the_o woman_n &_o the_o serpent_n and_o afterward_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o woman_n and_o the_o serpent_n seed_n so_o as_o the_o woman_n be_v oppose_v to_o the_o serpent_n and_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o one_o to_o the_o seed_n of_o the_o other_o but_o the_o victory_n promse_v be_v say_v to_o be_v get_v against_o the_o serpent_n himself_o and_o not_o against_o the_o seed_n wherefore_o the_o same_o appertain_v rather_o to_o the_o woman_n herself_o then_o to_o her_o seed_n for_o the_o word_n follow_v between_o thy_o seed_n and_o her_o seed_n do_v not_o proper_o signify_v any_o new_a combat_n but_o a_o continuance_n of_o that_o combat_n which_o be_v between_o the_o woman_n and_o the_o serpent_n and_o be_v put_v in_o by_o way_n of_o parenthesis_n for_o the_o combat_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o her_o child_n be_v all_o one_o combat_n 10._o but_o the_o chief_a cause_n that_o move_v the_o church_n to_o retain_v at_o this_o time_n rather_o the_o word_n ipsa_fw-la then_o ipsum_fw-la or_o ipse_fw-la be_v to_o control_v the_o error_n of_o the_o lutheran_n for_o if_o the_o read_n have_v be_v ipsum_fw-la or_o ipse_fw-la one_o may_v have_v think_v this_o promise_n to_o have_v appertain_v only_o to_o christ_n as_o they_o though_o erroneous_o will_v have_v it_o but_o by_o read_v ipsa_fw-la this_o promise_n must_v needs_o be_v understand_v to_o have_v be_v make_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o such_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n whether_o she_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n or_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n to_o do_v all_o as_o be_v most_o profitable_a and_o most_o for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o faithful_a neither_o be_v christ_n hereby_o exclude_v but_o he_o be_v rather_o include_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n aâ_n be_v also_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n can_v consist_v or_o do_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a without_o the_o help_n of_o her_o supreme_a head_n christ_n and_o the_o assistance_n of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n that_o the_o read_n according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n text_n be_v ipsa_fw-la or_o ipsissima_fw-la and_o not_o ipsum_fw-la or_o ipse_fw-la be_v learned_o prove_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n of_o the_o latin_a edition_n of_o this_o controversy_n to_o which_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n and_o to_o the_o chapter_n follow_v in_o which_o other_o place_n of_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n be_v defend_v chap._n xi_o that_o the_o write_a word_n be_v no_o fit_a judge_n of_o controversy_n concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n our_o adversary_n in_o the_o beginning_n do_v stiff_o maintain_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v to_o be_v the_o only_a judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n which_o arise_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o when_o they_o be_v tell_v that_o to_o make_v the_o scripture_n a_o judge_n be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v the_o scripture_n do_v hear_v speak_v &_o live_v for_o all_o these_o appertain_v to_o a_o judge_n &_o that_o nothing_o be_v more_o unreasonable_a they_o to_o assign_v such_o a_o judge_n of_o controversy_n as_o can_v neither_o hair_n nor_o speak_v but_o be_v utter_o void_a of_o life_n change_v their_o opinion_n they_o begin_v 10._o jun._n contra_fw-la bell._n cont._n 1._o l._n 3._o c._n 3._o nota_fw-la 9_o etc._n etc._n 9_o nota_fw-la e._n &_o 10._o now_o to_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v improper_o call_v a_o judge_n and_o that_o to_o speak_v proper_o the_o holy_a ghost_n only_o be_v the_o judge_n and_o thus_o have_v for_o many_o year_n together_o speak_v unproper_o now_o at_o last_o they_o fly_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o who_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o be_v the_o supreme_a â5â_n robert_n roâoc_n de_fw-fr vocat_fw-la effic_fw-la c._n â5â_n judge_n of_o all_o 2._o but_o they_o shall_v have_v add_v further_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n at_o this_o time_n do_v not_o immediate_o propose_v any_o new_a revelation_n to_o any_o particular_a man_n concern_v point_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o propose_v verity_n already_o reveal_v and_o that_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n as_o shall_v be_v show_v hereafter_o in_o the_o next_o controversy_n where_o we_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o say_v more_o of_o this_o matter_n whosoever_o therefore_o contemn_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n in_o so_o do_v he_o despise_v the_o judgement_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o christ_n himself_o say_v 16._o luc._n 10._o v._n 16._o he_o that_o despyse_v you_o despyse_v i_o neither_o do_v the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v by_o the_o scripture_n but_o when_o it_o be_v right_o understand_v which_o be_v never_o but_o when_o we_o embrace_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o we_o have_v already_o show_v in_o the_o four_o chapter_n chap._n xii_o whether_o the_o scripture_n be_v obscure_a or_o hard_o to_o be_v understand_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v either_o write_v or_o unwritten_a and_o preach_v now_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o the_o word_n preach_v be_v not_o obscure_a for_o it_o be_v not_o hide_v from_o such_o as_o perish_v the_o question_n therefore_o be_v of_o the_o write_a word_n 3._o â_o cor._n 4._o v._n 3._o our_o adversary_n in_o the_o beginning_n do_v teach_v that_o the_o whole_a scripture_n be_v easy_a and_o no_o part_n thereof_o hard_o to_o be_v understod_a but_o after_o that_o not_o only_o many_o obscure_a place_n but_o even_o
they_o as_o if_o christ_n shall_v teach_v that_o we_o can_v deserve_v life_n everlasting_a by_o keep_v the_o law_n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o conclude_v say_v this_o answer_n of_o christ_n be_v according_a to_o the_o old_a law_n to_o wit_n that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v account_v just_a before_o god_n but_o he_o who_o shall_v satify_v the_o law_n which_o be_v impossible_a and_o 7._o calu._n in_o 16._o luc._n v._n 28._o lâb_fw-la 3._o instit_fw-la c._n 17._o sect_n 7._o upon_o the_o late_a place_n he_o write_v thus_o it_o be_v impossible_a say_v he_o to_o fulfil_v what_o the_o law_n command_v yea_o it_o be_v a_o principal_a axiom_n with_o caluin_n &_o a_o common_a answer_n to_o all_o such_o place_n a_o legal_a promise_n say_v he_o amnex_v to_o a_o condition_n impossible_a prove_v nothing_o &_o thus_o with_o sâch_a impossibility_n they_o dally_v with_o we_o &_o with_o the_o holy_a scripture_n itself_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o rom._n calu._n &_o beza_n in_o c._n 2._o ad_fw-la rom._n dare_v affirm_v that_o the_o apostle_n in_o one_o chapter_n avouch_v unto_o we_o seven_o time_n thing_n impossible_a for_o whereas_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o 2._o cap._n of_o the_o ep._n to_o the_o rom._n and_o 6._o v._n affirm_v 1565._o bez._n in_o c._n 2._o ad_fw-la râ_n v._o 6._o annot_v 6._o edit_n a_o 1550._o 1564._o 1565._o first_o that_o god_n will_v render_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o work_n they_o interpret_v the_o place_n thus_o that_o god_n will_v indeed_o give_v to_o man_n according_a to_o their_o good_a work_n if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o but_o that_o no_o man_n can_v do_v any_o good_a work_n before_o god_n be_v there_o any_o man_n say_v beza_n that_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o bring_v these_o work_n which_o the_o apostle_n say_v shall_v be_v reward_v with_o eternal_a life_n and_o whereas_o in_o the_o seven_o v._n the_o apostle_n say_v that_o god_n do_v render_v life_n everlasting_a to_o such_o as_o seek_v the_o same_o by_o the_o patience_n of_o good_a work_n their_o answer_n be_v that_o he_o insinuate_v a_o thing_n impossible_a and_o that_o no_o man_n can_v do_v any_o good_a work_n before_o god_n no_o not_o the_o iusl_a man_n which_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o eternal_a damnation_n 4._o calu._n l._n 3._o instit_fw-la c._n 19_o sect_n 4._o whosoever_o say_v caluin_n have_v make_v the_o great_a progress_n before_o all_o other_o in_o the_o way_n of_o the_o lord_n if_o they_o cast_v their_o eye_n upon_o the_o lord_n god_n what_o work_n soever_o they_o attempt_v or_o go_v about_o they_o see_v it_o to_o be_v accurse_v and_o sure_o i_o for_o my_o part_n can_v easy_o believe_v that_o such_o be_v the_o progress_n of_o our_o adversarir_n in_o the_o way_n of_o our_o lord_n see_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o aposile_n place_n in_o the_o latin_a edition_n 2._o the_o ten_o &_o last_o shift_n be_v the_o wrest_n of_o diverse_a word_n to_o a_o wrong_a sense_n and_o to_o invent_v sundry_a different_a understanding_n of_o the_o word_n to_o build_v upon_o it_o many_o interpretation_n never_o hear_v of_o before_o and_o for_o a_o final_a conclusion_n to_o say_v the_o place_n be_v obscure_a and_o therefore_o prove_v nothing_o for_o 19_o luc._n 22._o v._n 19_o example_n hereof_o those_o most_o evident_a word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n with_o be_v give_v for_o you_o may_v suffice_v for_o some_o of_o they_o wrest_v the_o pronowne_n hoc_fw-la other_o the_o word_n est_fw-fr other_o the_o word_n corpus_fw-la other_o the_o pronowne_n meum_fw-la other_o the_o relative_a quod_fw-la other_o the_o preposition_n pro_fw-la other_o the_o pronowne_n vobis_fw-la and_o other_o the_o verb_n datur_fw-la and_o each_o word_n they_o wrest_v diverse_a way_n so_o as_o one_o more_o than_o 1577._o anno_fw-la 1577._o thirty_o year_n ago_o have_v gather_v out_o of_o their_o writing_n two_o hundred_o exposition_n of_o these_o few_o word_n of_o christ_n of_o which_o clâuâius_n the_o xaincte_n number_v particular_o 84._o and_o that_o they_o be_v both_o many_o and_o different_a yea_o repugnant_a wherewith_o they_o labour_v to_o make_v obscure_a these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n no_o man_n can_v doubt_v see_v another_o example_n in_o the_o latin_a edition_n and_o it_o be_v worthy_a of_o note_v that_o in_o all_o these_o shift_n they_o serve_v themselves_o of_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n to_o prove_v what_o they_o say_v whereby_o it_o may_v appear_v how_o easy_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o corrupt_v the_o scripture_n by_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n but_o that_o the_o provident_a and_o daily_a care_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_a 28._o 1._o ad_fw-la tim._n v._n 15._o matt._n 28._o church_n oppose_v itself_o against_o such_o corruption_n worthy_o therefore_o call_v the_o pillar_n and_o firmament_n of_o truth_n against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v finis_fw-la of_o tradition_n the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o first_o controversy_n chap._n i._o of_o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o question_n have_v already_o in_o the_o precedent_a treatise_n speak_v of_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n and_o of_o all_o other_o thing_n thereunto_o belong_v now_o it_o remain_v we_o speak_v a_o little_a of_o the_o unwritten_a word_n common_o call_v tradition_n but_o to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o state_n of_o this_o controversy_n may_v more_o easy_o be_v understand_v i_o will_v here_o set_v down_o four_o thing_n diligent_o to_o be_v consider_v in_o this_o matter_n we_o treat_v of_o the_o first_o be_v that_o by_o the_o unwritten_a word_n we_o only_o understand_v that_o which_o be_v not_o write_v in_o the_o old_a oâ_n new_a testament_n for_o of_o the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n in_o this_o sense_n be_v our_o whole_a controversy_n in_o this_o place_n wherefore_o that_o objection_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v both_o frivolous_a and_o nothing_o worth_a to_o wit_n that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o we_o call_v the_o unwritten_a word_n may_v be_v find_v extant_a either_o among_o the_o holy_a father_n or_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o counsel_n or_o other_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n but_o this_o nothing_o belong_v unto_o this_o purpose_n for_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o that_o this_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o write_v in_o any_o book_n either_o of_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n 2._o the_o second_o be_v that_o a_o thing_n may_v be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 2._o way_n the_o one_o way_n be_v implicit_a that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o some_o general_a principle_n from_o whence_o this_o other_o may_v be_v certain_o deduce_v and_o in_o this_o sense_n we_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n be_v contain_v in_o holy_a writ_n and_o not_o only_o in_o scripture_n but_o also_o in_o the_o apostle_n 40._o s._n aug._n in_o 140._o quaest_n upon_o exodus_fw-la tom._n 4._o matt._n 22._o v._n 40._o creed_n yea_o even_o in_o that_o one_o article_n i_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n so_o that_o it_o be_v diligent_o examine_v and_o well_o understand_v as_o s._n augustine_n very_o well_o note_v for_o so_o say_v christ_n the_o whole_a law_n and_o prophet_n do_v depend_v upon_o two_o precept_n of_o charity_n as_o in_o the_o same_o place_n s._n augustine_n note_v for_o see_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v the_o church_n in_o all_o thing_n &_o that_o it_o can_v neither_o deceive_v usnor_n be_v deceive_v as_o we_o will_v evident_o prove_v in_o the_o next_o controversy_n in_o the_o 7._o chapter_n it_o consequent_o also_o teach_v the_o whole_a and_o entire_a word_n of_o god_n see_v that_o all_o that_o which_o be_v not_o express_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v contain_v expressy_a in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n the_o which_o the_o scripture_n commend_v unto_o we_o as_o infallible_a as_o s._n augustine_n very_n well_o say_v and_o declare_v 16._o s._n aug._n tom._n 7._o contra_fw-la crescon_n gram._n c._n â3_n &_o de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eâcles_n c._n 22._o in_o fine-matt_n 17_o v._o 5._o matt._n 81._o v._n 17._o luc._n 10._o 16._o in_o many_o place_n for_o even_o as_o god_n the_o father_n comprehend_v in_o these_o few_o word_n this_o be_v my_o wellbeloved_a son_n hear_v he_o the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n so_o christ_n propose_v unto_o we_o the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n when_o he_o command_v we_o to_o hear_v the_o church_n 3._o and_o in_o this_o sense_n do_v the_o holy_a father_n often_o time_n say_v that_o all_o the_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o wit_n in_o that_o general_a principle_n in_o the_o which_o they_o admonish_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o church_n but_o many_o of_o the_o holy_a father_n saying_n be_v falsify_v &_o corrupt_v by_o martin_n ken_n nitius_fw-la and_o some_o caluinist_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o
judocus_n ruesten_n in_o his_o first_o tome_n defend_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n against_o kemnitius_n 4._o second_o a_o thing_n may_v be_v contain_v in_o express_a word_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o that_o christ_n be_v bear_v suffer_v and_o rise_v again_o etc._n etc._n and_o in_o this_o sense_n we_o deny_v that_o the_o whole_a word_n of_o god_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripâuâe_n that_o objection_n of_o our_o adversary_n by_o this_o may_v easy_o be_v answer_v when_o they_o say_v that_o we_o affirm_v that_o tradition_n be_v the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n &_o yet_o we_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v they_o by_o scripture_n for_o we_o do_v not_o prove_v every_o particular_a tradition_n by_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n but_o we_o only_o deduce_v and_o gather_v they_o out_o of_o it_o and_o convince_v in_o general_a that_o there_o be_v tradition_n 5._o the_o three_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v be_v that_o our_o adversary_n be_v convince_v by_o truth_n do_v acknowledge_v that_o many_o thing_n be_v deliver_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o 1582._o caluin_n count_v 4._o sess_v con._n trident._n in_o ântid_v beza_n denotis_fw-la eccles_n tom_fw-mi 3_o tract_n theoâ_n p._n 137._o edit_n anni_fw-la 1582._o apostle_n beside_o those_o which_o be_v write_v but_o say_v they_o those_o be_v only_o external_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n serve_v only_o for_o the_o ornament_n or_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n but_o nothing_o concern_v doctrine_n of_o faith_n be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n which_o they_o have_v not_o set_v down_o in_o writing_n so_o caluin_n and_o some_o other_o which_o follow_v his_o opinion_n wherefore_o it_o remain_v for_o we_o to_o prove_v that_o not_o ââly_o external_a ceremony_n but_o also_o those_o which_o belong_v unto_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n be_v deliver_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o apostle_n &_o that_o they_o be_v never_o express_o âet_v down_o in_o writing_n 6._o the_o four_o thing_n be_v that_o see_v our_o adversary_n can_v deny_v that_o which_o be_v object_v unto_o they_o by_o catholic_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o scripture_n in_o many_o place_n make_v express_v mention_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v deliver_v and_o diwlge_v over_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o we_o have_v already_o declare_v even_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o be_v wont_v to_o answer_v that_o long_o since_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n this_o word_n of_o god_n be_v deliver_v preach_v and_o not_o write_v but_o the_o apostle_n after_o ward_n set_v down_o in_o write_v all_o the_o preach_v word_n of_o god_n or_o at_o the_o least_o as_o much_o thereof_o as_o be_v necessary_a unto_o salvation_n the_o which_o solution_n albeit_o it_o be_v very_o weak_a and_o frivolous_a see_v that_o it_o rely_v upon_o no_o sure_a ground_n yet_o notwithstanding_o tâat_v it_o may_v more_o full_o be_v confute_v we_o will_v declare_v hereafter_o that_o many_o of_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o express_o set_v down_o in_o write_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o state_n of_o this_o question_n chap._n ii_o out_o of_o the_o first_o and_o chief_a principle_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v clear_o convince_v that_o there_o be_v tradition_n the_o first_o argument_n whereby_o we_o prove_v tradition_n be_v take_v out_o of_o some_o of_o the_o chief_a principle_n of_o faith_n for_o there_o be_v three_o chief_a and_o most_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n yea_o the_o câieâe_a ground_n of_o our_o whole_a faith_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v express_o in_o scripture_n 2._o the_o first_o that_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v some_o catalogue_n or_o canon_n of_o the_o sacred_a book_n aswell_o of_o the_o old_a as_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o which_o all_o christian_n with_o a_o assure_a faith_n shall_v embrace_v as_o a_o most_o certain_a and_o a_o undoubted_a truth_n and_o this_o be_v a_o very_a necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n yea_o of_o it_o depend_v the_o authority_n of_o all_o the_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n because_o by_o this_o canon_n the_o sacred_a and_o true_a book_n of_o scripture_n be_v discern_v and_o make_v know_v from_o all_o those_o which_o be_v apocryphal_a especial_o because_o aswell_o in_o time_n pass_v as_o in_o these_o our_o day_n there_o have_v be_v so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a controversye_n about_o the_o canonical_a and_o apocryphal_a book_n of_o scripture_n and_o such_o a_o canon_n be_v altogether_o necessary_a aswell_o in_o the_o ancient_a church_n before_o christ_n as_o in_o our_o present_a church_n after_o christ_n time_n the_o which_o also_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o have_v learn_v by_o experience_n for_o they_o have_v also_o place_v their_o new_a canon_n of_o the_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n in_o their_o confession_n make_v at_o 3._o confess_v ruâellana_n act._n 3._o âochell_n and_o in_o the_o late_a end_n of_o some_o of_o their_o bibles_n and_o yet_o neither_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n nor_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o new_a law_n be_v this_o canon_n ever_o write_v down_o in_o the_o bibles_n themselves_o 2._o i_o know_v our_o adversary_n that_o they_o may_v escape_v this_o argument_n do_v run_v to_o the_o inward_a instinct_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whereby_o say_v they_o we_o know_v what_o book_n be_v canonical_a and_o what_o be_v not_o but_o this_o answer_n be_v refute_v &_o reject_v before_o where_o we_o have_v show_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o move_v we_o to_o believe_v any_o thing_n with_o the_o catholic_a faith_n which_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o 5._o suprac_n 5._o therefore_o the_o holy_a ghost_n move_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o some_o book_n be_v canonical_a and_o some_o be_v not_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o this_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o ask_v therefore_o of_o they_o whether_o this_o be_v the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n or_o the_o unwritten_a if_o it_o be_v the_o write_a word_n in_o what_o book_n or_o chapter_n be_v it_o to_o befound_v if_o it_o be_v not_o where_o to_o be_v find_v our_o adversary_n must_v needs_o contesse_v that_o by_o the_o instinct_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o also_o believe_v the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n or_o tradition_n 3._o the_o second_o principle_n of_o faith_n be_v that_o we_o must_v necessary_o with_o a_o assure_a and_o firm_a faith_n believe_v that_o all_o those_o book_n either_o of_o the_o old_a or_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o we_o now_o retain_v be_v safe_o deliver_v unto_o we_o entire_o aâd_v uncorrupted_a through_o so_o many_o hand_n so_o many_o age_n so_o many_o vexation_n and_o persecution_n of_o the_o christian_n for_o otherwise_o the_o whole_a credit_n and_o authority_n of_o those_o book_n will_v decay_v and_o perish_v but_o this_o be_v no_o where_o extant_a or_o write_v for_o neither_o the_o prophet_n or_o apostle_n have_v ever_o write_v that_o their_o book_n shall_v never_o be_v falsify_v or_o corrupt_v by_o any_o yea_o it_o appear_v sufficient_o 13_o supra_fw-la c._n 9_o 10._o 12._o &_o 13_o by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v already_o say_v that_o they_o be_v falsify_v and_o corrupt_v in_o many_o book_n by_o the_o jew_n and_o hâretâkes_n let_v our_o adversary_n therefore_o tell_v we_o where_o it_o be_v write_v that_o this_o holy_a scripture_n which_o we_o have_v now_o be_v not_o corrupt_v or_o falsify_v 4._o the_o three_o principle_n of_o fâyth_n be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o letter_n for_o the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n consist_v rather_o in_o the_o true_a sense_n or_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n then_o in_o the_o word_n 3._o supra_fw-la cap._n 3._o themselves_o as_o we_o have_v declare_v before_o but_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o what_o sense_n or_o meaning_n the_o word_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v either_o proper_o or_o figurative_o can_v be_v have_v from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n alone_o but_o also_o from_o the_o doctrine_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o in_o the_o four_o chapter_n whereby_o it_o also_o follow_v that_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n contain_v in_o it_o the_o least_o part_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o wit_n the_o bare_a letter_n only_o but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v and_o deliver_v keep_v and_o profess_v unto_o we_o the_o chief_n part_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o true_a &_o native_a sense_n of_o the_o same_o tradiâ_fw-la s._n basil_n l._n de_fw-fr spir._n sanct_n c._n 27._o brent_n contra_fw-la petr._n â_o soto_n in_o suis_fw-fr prologom_n kemnit_fw-la count_n 4._o sess_v conc._n trid._n cùm_fw-la agiâ_n de_fw-la 2._o gen_fw-la tradiâ_fw-la 5._o and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o s._n basil_n say_v that_o those_o who_o reject_v the_o unwritten_a point_n of_o faith_n as_o indiscreet_a person_n do_v
this_o manner_n for_o the_o solution_n say_v he_o iniurijs_fw-la l._n item_n apud_fw-la §._o a_o it_o prâtor_n ff_n dâ_n iniurijs_fw-la of_o all_o thing_n which_o may_v here_o be_v allege_v by_o the_o philosopher_n for_o thus_o he_o call_v the_o catholic_n thou_o must_v observe_v this_o rule_n which_o be_v a_o axiom_n among_o lawyer_n that_o those_o thing_n which_o do_v not_o deserve_v any_o special_a note_n or_o mark_n be_v understand_v and_o esteem_v as_o thing_n neglect_v unless_o they_o be_v special_o note_v but_o i_o pray_v thou_o judge_v whether_o this_o article_n of_o the_o trinity_n deserve_v any_o special_a note_n or_o no_o see_v that_o it_o be_v the_o chief_a and_o first_o ground_n of_o all_o our_o faith_n whereof_o the_o whole_a knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o christ_n depend_v and_o whether_o it_o be_v express_o note_v or_o no_o may_v be_v see_v by_o read_v over_o the_o scripture_n see_v that_o there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n to_o be_v find_v of_o the_o trinity_n in_o the_o whole_a bible_n nor_o of_o the_o person_n thereof_o nor_o of_o the_o essence_n or_o unity_n of_o the_o supposition_n nor_o of_o the_o unity_n of_o nature_n in_o many_o distinct_a thing_n and_o such_o like_a thus_o far_a seruetus_fw-la by_o this_o it_o evident_o appear_v that_o all_o these_o monstrous_a &_o strange_a opinion_n of_o latter_a arian_n who_o be_v also_o call_v antitrinitarians_a do_v proceed_v from_o this_o one_o principle_n of_o our_o adversary_n to_o wit_n that_o we_o must_v only_o believe_v scripture_n and_o by_o this_o they_o be_v increase_v but_o let_v we_o now_o see_v other_o matter_n 9_o the_o second_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v that_o infant_n be_v to_o be_v baptize_v but_o our_o adversary_n will_v never_o show_v this_o in_o the_o holy_a 1._o joan._n 3._o v._n 1._o scripture_n for_o that_o one_o place_n which_o do_v clear_o convince_v this_o to_o wit_n unless_o he_o be_v bear_v again_o of_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n he_o can_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n they_o wrest_v and_o expound_v it_o in_o another_o sense_n for_o they_o will_v 5._o calu._n in_o cap._n 5._o joan._n v._o 5._o not_o have_v this_o word_n water_n to_o signify_v the_o element_n of_o water_n but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o caluin_n hence_o arise_v that_o wicked_a sect_n of_o the_o anabaptiste_n who_o affirm_v now_o adays_o that_o it_o be_v a_o unlaw_n full_a and_o profane_a thing_n to_o baptize_v infant_n see_v that_o there_o be_v no_o solid_a reason_n hereof_o extant_a in_o the_o scripture_n 10._o for_o that_o whereunto_o caluin_n and_o his_o follower_n do_v fly_v for_o refuge_n to_o wit_n that_o in_o the_o old_a law_n infant_n be_v circumcise_v 10._o genes_n 17._o v._n 10._o the_o anabaptiste_n do_v easy_o confuâe_v both_o because_o concern_v that_o there_o be_v a_o express_a precept_n of_o god_n but_o there_o be_v none_o of_o the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n and_o the_o similitude_n also_o betwixt_o circumcision_n and_o baptism_n do_v not_o hold_v in_o all_o thing_n for_o otherwise_o 5._o s._n aug_n tom._n 6._o de_fw-mi haer_fw-mi cap._n 84._o s._n hier._n contra_fw-la hell_n vid_fw-la author_n de_fw-fr eccl._n dogm_n cap._n 69._o s._n ambros_n in_o epist_n 7._o ad_fw-la siricium_n papam_fw-la epiph._n haer_fw-mi 78._o lunius_fw-la contra_fw-la bellar_n controu_fw-fr 1._o lib._n 4._o c._n 9_o nota_fw-la 5._o woman_n shall_v not_o be_v baptize_v but_o only_a man_n 11._o the_o three_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n the_o mother_n of_o god_n remain_v always_o a_o virgin_n even_o after_o her_o childbyâth_n for_o this_o be_v extant_a no_o where_n in_o scripture_n and_o yet_o heluidius_fw-la be_v condemn_v as_o a_o heretic_n by_o the_o whole_a ancient_a church_n because_o he_o presume_v to_o deny_v it_o 12._o when_o card._n bellarmine_n have_v allege_v this_o un_fw-fr write_v point_n of_o faith_n to_o prove_v that_o all_o such_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o express_o set_v down_o in_o holy_a writ_n francisâus_n junius_n to_o answer_n unto_o this_o difficulty_n be_v force_v to_o take_v and_o approve_v the_o condemn_a heresy_n of_o heluidius_fw-la for_o he_o deny_v that_o we_o ought_v to_o believe_v as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n the_o perpetual_a virginity_n of_o our_o b._n lady_n but_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v never_o condemn_v heluidius_fw-la aâ_n a_o heretic_n unless_o he_o have_v deny_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o in_o this_o manner_n be_v our_o adversary_n force_v to_o renew_v the_o old_a heresy_n of_o time_n past_a to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v defend_v this_o their_o paradox_n that_o we_o must_v only_o believe_v scripture_n chap._n four_o whether_o there_o be_v any_o point_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v allege_v which_o be_v not_o where_o extant_a in_o the_o bible_n the_o four_o point_n that_o our_o adversary_n also_o believe_v but_o without_o express_a scripture_n for_o it_o be_v that_o christian_n can_v lawful_o 2._o council_n trident._n sess_v 24._o c._n 2._o have_v more_o wyve_n at_o once_o for_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v very_o well_o define_v this_o to_o be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n against_o the_o heresy_n of_o these_o time_n whereof_o we_o will_v speak_v more_o present_o but_o yet_o our_o adversary_n can_v never_o prove_v this_o out_o of_o scripture_n only_o abstract_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n albeit_o they_o also_o agree_v with_o we_o in_o the_o belief_n hereof_o yea_o the_o example_n of_o holy_a scripture_n do_v rather_o persuade_v the_o contrary_n for_o those_o most_o holy_a man_n abraham_n jacob_n david_n and_o many_o other_o have_v more_o wyve_n at_o once_o yet_o never_o do_v god_n reprehend_v this_o in_o they_o albeit_o he_o often_o sâake_v unto_o they_o dudiâium_n beza_n ep._n 1._o ad_fw-la andream_v dudiâium_n 2._o when_o bernardine_n ochiâe_v one_o of_o caluins_n scholar_n do_v consider_v this_o he_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o persuade_v both_o by_o word_n and_o writing_n that_o polygamy_n be_v yet_o lawful_a of_o who_o and_o of_o his_o most_o wicked_a life_n beza_n write_v at_o large_a â_o but_o ochinus_n ground_v only_o this_o his_o heresy_n in_o that_o principle_n of_o our_o adversary_n before_o allege_a to_o wit_n that_o we_o must_v believe_v nothing_o which_o be_v not_o express_o in_o theol._n beza_n in_o lib_n de_fw-fr poligamia_n extat_fw-la in_o iâit_fw-la voluminis_fw-la 2._o suarum_fw-la tract_n theol._n scripture_n and_o whereupon_o beza_n himself_o in_o his_o book_n which_o he_o write_v against_o the_o same_o ochinus_n do_v testyfy_v that_o ochinus_n use_v this_o argument_n where_o beza_n also_o manifest_o acknowledge_v that_o polygamy_n be_v not_o forbid_v in_o holy_a scripture_n by_o any_o express_a law_n the_o other_o argument_n say_v beza_n of_o ochinus_n be_v that_o polygamy_n be_v not_o forbid_v by_o any_o express_a law_n to_o the_o contrary_a but_o i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v not_o law_n write_v of_o all_o thing_n thus_o beza_n 3._o but_o after_o ward_v indeed_o beza_n go_v about_o to_o prove_v that_o polygamy_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n but_o the_o same_o difficulty_n still_o remain_v for_o according_a to_o our_o adversary_n doctrine_n all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v express_v in_o holy_a scripture_n but_o the_o observation_n of_o all_o thing_n belong_v to_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n be_v altogether_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n therefore_o the_o observation_n of_o these_o thing_n be_v express_v in_o scripture_n or_o else_o true_o many_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n must_v be_v seek_v for_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n moreover_o that_o polygamy_n be_v unlawful_a be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o this_o as_o beza_n confess_v be_v not_o express_o contain_v in_o scripture_n therefore_o all_o the_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o express_o contain_v in_o scripture_n 4._o the_o first_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n may_v only_o be_v give_v in_o water_n for_o this_o point_n be_v also_o very_o necessary_a for_o the_o church_n lest_o so_o great_a and_o worthy_a a_o sacrament_n be_v profane_v contrary_a to_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o our_o adversary_n will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v this_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n only_o who_o deny_v that_o the_o foresaid_a place_n of_o s._n john_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o true_a water_n as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o in_o the_o second_o point_n for_o the_o example_n of_o holy_a scripture_n do_v prove_v indeed_o suum_fw-la §._o 9_o cap._n praece_v beza_n epist_n 2._o ad_fw-la tho._n tilium_fw-la fratrem_fw-la &_o symmistam_fw-la suum_fw-la that_o water_n be_v the_o fit_a matter_n of_o baptism_n but_o they_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o matter_n 5._o when_o beza_n do_v consider_v this_o well_o lest_o that_o his_o foresay_a principle_n that_o we_o must_v believe_v nothing_o but_o
scripture_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v call_v in_o question_n he_o be_v not_o a_o shame_a to_o write_v that_o baptism_n may_v be_v give_v in_o any_o liquor_n and_o by_o this_o mean_v it_o will_v be_v true_a and_o lawful_a baptism_n though_o it_o be_v give_v in_o milk_n wine_n yea_o in_o ink_n or_o any_o other_o filthy_a liquor_n thus_o be_v our_o adversary_n force_v to_o admit_v these_o absurditye_n lest_o they_o may_v be_v force_v to_o depart_v from_o that_o their_o principle_n of_o believe_v only_a scripture_n 6._o furthermore_o to_o the_o end_n that_o beza_n might_n more_o easy_o persuade_v the_o ignorant_a common_a people_n to_o admit_v this_o his_o strange_a paradox_n he_o add_v present_o a_o very_a grievous_a slander_n against_o the_o catholic_a doctor_n let_v water_n be_v want_v say_v beza_n 2._o beza_n ib._n epist_n 2._o and_o yet_o the_o baptism_n of_o any_o can_v be_v defer_v with_o edification_n nor_o must_v not_o be_v i_o true_o will_v as_o well_o and_o as_o lawful_o baptize_v in_o any_o other_o liquor_n as_o in_o water_n neither_o be_v the_o most_o superstitious_a divines_n of_o any_o other_o opinion_n in_o these_o matter_n thus_o far_o beza_n but_o these_o thing_n which_o he_o write_v be_v most_o false_a for_o there_o be_v no_o catholic_a nor_o scholastical_a doctor_n baptism_n council_n trid._n sess_v 7._o car_n 2._o the_o baptism_n who_o have_v ever_o either_o think_v or_o write_v so_o yea_o the_o plain_a contrary_n be_v define_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n 7._o the_o fix_a point_n of_o faith_n be_v that_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v only_o the_o necessary_a matter_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n this_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v also_o very_o necessary_a for_o the_o church_n lest_o so_o great_a and_o so_o excellent_a a_o sacrament_n shall_v be_v profane_v yet_o our_o adversary_n will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v it_o effectual_o out_o of_o scripture_n only_o for_o by_o this_o word_n bread_n any_o kind_n of_o meat_n be_v oftentimes_o signify_v in_o scripture_n of_o wine_n it_o be_v fââre_o more_o doubtful_a for_o the_o scripture_n make_v only_o mention_v of_o the_o chalice_n and_o not_o of_o the_o liquor_n which_o be_v in_o the_o chalice_n and_o cit_fw-la luc._n 22._o â_o 18._o cal_n ibid._n in_o sva_fw-la harmonia_fw-la beza_n ep._n 2._o cit_fw-la caluin_n himself_o acknowledge_v that_o these_o word_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n be_v speak_v before_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n 8._o the_o which_o when_o beza_n easy_o preceave_v here_o also_o be_v go_v about_o to_o bring_v in_o another_o error_n lest_o indeed_o he_o shall_v be_v fore_v to_o forsake_v his_o former_a principle_n of_o believe_v only_a scripture_n for_o he_o be_v not_o afraid_a to_o write_v that_o he_o err_v nothing_o from_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n who_o in_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n shall_v use_v instead_o of_o the_o bread_n appoint_v for_o that_o purpose_n any_o other_o usual_a meat_n and_o instead_o of_o the_o wine_n any_o other_o ordinary_a kind_n of_o drink_n and_o by_o this_o mean_v one_o may_v consecrate_v the_o eucharist_n either_o in_o cheese_n flesh_n fish_n or_o egg_n as_o also_o in_o milk_n water_n beer_n or_o vinager_n or_o any_o other_o liquor_n which_o hitherto_o be_v never_o hear_v of_o in_o god_n church_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o beza_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o attribute_v this_o most_o absurd_a error_n of_o he_o to_o all_o the_o scholastical_a doctor_n for_o of_o both_o these_o error_n he_o treat_v in_o the_o word_n before_o allege_a because_o when_o he_o say_v the_o scholastical_a doctor_n be_v of_o no_o other_o opinion_n he_o speak_v as_o well_o concern_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o eucharist_n as_o of_o the_o matter_n of_o baptism_n after_o this_o manner_n our_o adversary_n do_v force_v so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a error_n out_o of_o that_o their_o principle_n of_o believe_v only_a scripture_n whereof_o more_o may_v be_v allege_v which_o for_o brevity_n sake_n we_o omit_v 9_o but_o there_o be_v one_o thing_n i_o can_v let_v pass_n because_o thereby_o we_o clear_o convince_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o only_o contain_v un_fw-mi write_v point_n of_o faith_n but_o that_o which_o be_v more_o even_o in_o our_o adversary_n judgement_n they_o change_v and_o abolish_v such_o thing_n as_o be_v express_o command_v in_o scripture_n for_o even_o in_o the_o table_n of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v write_v by_o god_n own_o hand_n in_o many_o and_o manifest_a word_n the_o keep_n of_o 11._o exod._n â4_n v._o 1._o exod_n 20._o v._n 8_o 9_o 10._o 11._o the_o sabbath_n day_n be_v command_v the_o which_o notwithstanding_o now_o all_o except_o a_o few_o anabaptist_n do_v confess_v to_o be_v abrogate_a by_o ecclesiastical_a tradition_n only_o without_o any_o express_a testimony_n of_o scripture_n the_o anabaptist_n i_o say_v be_v also_o deceive_v by_o that_o common_a principle_n of_o our_o adversary_n of_o believe_v only_a scripture_n they_o go_v about_o to_o bring_v the_o observation_n of_o the_o sabbath_n day_n into_o uâe_v and_o custom_n again_o and_o for_o this_o sabatharij_fw-la viâe_fw-la prateolum_fw-la v._o sabatharij_fw-la cause_n they_o be_v call_v sabatharian_n but_o not_o so_o much_o the_o heresy_n as_o the_o madness_n of_o these_o man_n be_v condemn_v of_o all_o and_o namely_o of_o luther_n in_o his_o book_n against_o the_o sabbatharians_n in_o the_o seven_o tome_n chap._n v._o wherein_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v tradition_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n the_o three_o argument_n whereby_o we_o prove_v that_o all_o the_o point_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v not_o set_v down_o in_o write_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o authority_n 7._o coâcius_fw-la tom._n 1._o l._n â_o artic._n uâtimo_fw-la bellarm._n tom._n 1._o l._n 4â_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la c._n 7._o of_o the_o auncâent_a father_n who_o affirm_v and_o teach_v this_o in_o many_o place_n the_o which_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n as_o well_o the_o greek_n as_o the_o latin_n âodocus_fw-la coâcius_n have_v very_o diligent_o gather_v together_o in_o his_o book_n entitle_v thesâurus_n catholicus_n and_o before_o he_o bellarmine_n do_v the_o same_o but_o lest_o we_o be_v long_o than_o the_o order_n of_o epitome_n do_v permit_v especial_o in_o a_o thing_n so_o manifest_a it_o shall_v suffice_v we_o to_o allege_v one_o chief_a doctor_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o another_o of_o the_o latin_a church_n 2._o among_o the_o grecian_n s._n chrysostome_n be_v the_o most_o famous_a who_o do_v not_o only_o affirm_v it_o but_o also_o manifest_o prove_v it_o out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n for_o when_o he_o expound_v those_o word_n of_o the_o late_a epistle_n 14._o 2._o thes_n â_o 2._o v._n 14._o to_o the_o thessalonian_o therefore_o brethren_n stand_v and_o hold_v the_o tradition_n which_o you_o have_v learn_v whether_o it_o be_v by_o word_n or_o by_o our_o epistle_n he_o write_v thus_o hence_o it_o appear_v say_v s._n chrysostome_n that_o he_o do_v not_o deliââr_v all_o thing_n unto_o they_o by_o his_o epistle_n but_o many_o thing_n also_o without_o his_o letter_n but_o as_o well_o these_o as_o those_o other_o worthy_o deserve_v thes_n s._n chrys_n hom._n 4._o in_o 2._o ad_fw-la thes_n to_o be_v believe_v therefore_o âe_v esteem_v the_o tradition_n also_o of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v worthy_a oâ_n credit_n it_o be_v a_o tradition_n seek_v no_o further_o thus_o s._n chrysostome_n but_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o the_o 7._o calu._n l._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 14._o sect_n ult._n s._n aug._n tom._n 7._o de_fw-la baât_fw-la contra_fw-la donat._n l._n 2._o cap_n 7._o apostle_n and_o consequent_o s._n chrysostome_n also_o who_o expound_v he_o do_v not_o only_o speak_v of_o ceremony_n and_o custom_n but_o also_o of_o point_n of_o faith_n 3._o s._n augustine_n who_o calâin_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o best_a and_o most_o faithful_a witness_n of_o antiquity_n write_v in_o this_o manner_n many_o thing_n be_v not_o to_o be_v sound_a in_o the_o apostle_n writing_n nor_o in_o the_o ensew_a counsel_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o because_o they_o be_v general_o keep_v through_o out_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n they_o be_v iuge_v to_o have_v be_v deliver_v and_o commend_v by_o none_o but_o by_o they_o thus_o s._n augustine_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v say_v that_o s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o ceremony_n and_o not_o of_o point_n of_o faith_n for_o in_o that_o place_n he_o prove_v against_o the_o donatist_n that_n those_o which_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o accustom_a form_n and_o matter_n by_o heretic_n be_v not_o to_o be_v baptize_v again_o but_o none_o unless_o he_o be_v a_o anabaptist_n will_v deny_v that_o this_o be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n chap._n
it_o weak_a sophistical_a and_o erroneous_a 11._o beside_o that_o there_o be_v so_o many_o and_o so_o contrary_a illation_n of_o diverse_a man_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v altogether_o necessary_a in_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o there_o may_v arise_v a_o certain_a and_o a_o undoubted_a faith_n of_o these_o matter_n of_o which_o sort_n tradition_n be_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n 12._o but_o when_o one_o believe_v such_o a_o illation_n with_o a_o divine_a or_o catholic_a faith_n he_o must_v needs_o know_v two_o thing_n the_o one_o be_v that_o the_o express_a place_n of_o scripture_n from_o whence_o this_o conclusion_n be_v deduce_v must_v certain_o be_v well_o understand_v by_o he_o which_o dispute_v the_o other_o be_v that_o he_o who_o make_v such_o a_o deduction_n and_o collection_n can_v neither_o deceive_v other_o nor_o be_v deceive_v himself_o but_o none_o can_v know_v either_o of_o these_o without_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n see_v that_o otherwise_o there_o be_v none_o which_o may_v not_o be_v deceive_v sometime_o all_o collection_n therefore_o which_o produce_v or_o breed_v faith_n in_o we_o do_v most_o clear_o convince_v and_o show_v the_o authority_n and_o necessity_n of_o tradition_n chap._n vii_o wherein_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v tradition_n by_o the_o absurdity_n which_o otherwise_o will_v follow_v the_o five_o argument_n whereby_o we_o prove_v that_o many_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v which_o be_v not_o express_v in_o holy_a scripture_n be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o absurdity_n which_o do_v ensue_v of_o the_o contrary_a doctrine_n for_o have_v once_o admit_v that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v which_o be_v not_o express_v in_o scripture_n all_o old_a heresy_n be_v renew_v and_o a_o great_a uncertainty_n and_o confusion_n of_o all_o thing_n be_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n of_o god_n yea_o even_o the_o way_n to_o atheism_n be_v lay_v open_a because_o have_v once_o reject_v &_o despise_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n all_o the_o point_n of_o faith_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n till_o now_o explicate_v and_o prove_v by_o the_o ancient_a father_n against_o heretic_n all_o those_o thing_n also_o which_o be_v decree_v and_o determine_v by_o all_o the_o general_a councâlls_n in_o time_n pass_v against_o the_o say_a heretic_n lose_v their_o chief_a strength_n and_o authority_n the_o which_o notwithstanding_o our_o adversary_n do_v acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o receive_v and_o believe_v 2._o neither_o do_v we_o know_v by_o a_o assure_a catholic_a faith_n whether_o there_o be_v ever_o any_o father_n or_o counsel_n but_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n but_o neither_o do_v we_o know_v any_o other_o way_n but_o by_o faith_n whether_o since_o the_o apostle_n time_n till_o now_o there_o be_v any_o catholic_n or_o noâ_n because_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v since_o the_o time_n and_o death_n of_o the_o apostle_n there_o be_v nothing_o extant_a in_o holy_a scripture_n see_v that_o all_o the_o book_n thereof_o be_v write_v before_o the_o death_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o such_o thing_n as_o have_v bân_o do_v since_o till_o now_o can_v otherwise_o be_v know_v but_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o neither_o be_v it_o sufficient_a to_o say_v that_o we_o know_v these_o thing_n by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n for_o that_o faith_n which_o proceed_v of_o history_n without_o the_o authority_n or_o tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v but_o a_o humane_a faith_n which_o oftentimes_o deceave_v other_o and_o may_v be_v deceive_v itself_o and_o therefore_o these_o kind_n of_o history_n can_v produce_v a_o divine_a faith_n in_o we_o this_o experience_n itself_o do_v clear_o teach_v us._n for_o our_o adversary_n do_v sometime_o doubt_v whether_o s._n peter_n be_v ever_o at_o rome_n or_o no_o because_o forsooth_o this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v express_o in_o holy_a scripture_n whereas_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v most_o assure_o prove_v and_o testify_v in_o many_o book_n both_o of_o the_o ancient_a historiographer_n and_o holy_a father_n why_o may_v they_o not_o as_o lawful_o call_v other_o matter_n in_o question_n which_o be_v notwithstanding_o express_o set_v down_o in_o other_o ancient_a writer_n our_o adversary_n therefore_o do_v make_v all_o thing_n very_o doubtful_a and_o uncertain_a while_o they_o will_v only_o believe_v and_o admit_v the_o scripture_n but_o now_o lât_v we_o answer_v their_o argument_n chap._n viii_o wherein_o the_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n take_v out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v confute_v the_o first_o argument_n whereby_o our_o adversary_n oppugn_v tradition_n and_o which_o they_o use_v very_o often_o the_o which_o also_o as_o invincible_a they_o have_v add_v to_o the_o confession_n of_o their_o ult._n rupell_v confess_v art_n 5._o deut._n 4._o v._o 2._o deut_n 12._o v._n ult._n faith_n they_o take_v out_o of_o these_o word_n of_o deuteronomy_n thou_o shall_v not_o add_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o word_n which_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o nor_o shall_v you_o take_v any_o thing_n from_o it_o and_o again_o that_o which_o i_o command_v thou_o do_v that_o only_o neither_o add_v or_o diminish_v any_o thing_n from_o it_o by_o these_o place_n of_o scripture_n our_o adversary_n do_v infer_v that_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o express_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n 2._o but_o this_o argument_n be_v erroneous_a and_o the_o weakness_n thereof_o be_v very_o great_a for_o many_o cause_n first_o because_o in_o those_o word_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o the_o scripture_n nor_o of_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n but_o only_o of_o the_o word_n preach_v and_o deliver_v viva_fw-la voce_fw-la thou_o shall_v not_o add_v say_v the_o scripture_n to_o the_o word_n that_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o i_o write_v unto_o you_o again_o do_v only_o say_v he_o that_o which_o i_o command_v thou_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o which_o i_o write_v unto_o thou_o 3._o moreover_o in_o these_o word_n the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v not_o only_o speak_v of_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v believe_v but_o also_o of_o ceremony_n and_o custom_n to_o be_v do_v and_o observe_v but_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o confess_v that_o these_o custom_n may_v be_v add_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n yea_o they_o have_v ordain_v themselves_o very_o many_o the_o which_o they_o change_v even_o yet_o when_o they_o please_v caluin_n also_o acknowledge_v that_o trident._n calu._n contra_fw-la 4_o sess_v council_n trident._n many_o unwritten_a custom_n be_v deliver_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o apostle_n 4._o that_o also_o according_a to_o the_o phrase_n of_o scripture_n be_v say_v to_o be_v add_v to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v contrary_a &_o opposite_a unit_fw-la for_o josue_n do_v not_o transgress_v this_o commandment_n of_o deuteronomy_n when_o he_o add_v his_o book_n to_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n nor_o do_v other_o transgress_v it_o who_o add_v the_o book_n of_o the_o judge_n ruth_n and_o of_o the_o king_n which_o be_v not_o write_v by_o moses_n &_o which_o be_v also_o to_o be_v believe_v as_o contain_v point_n of_o faith_n but_o in_o these_o book_n there_o be_v nothing_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o moses_n write_v and_o the_o hebrew_n text_n agree_v very_o well_o to_o this_o answer_n for_o in_o both_o place_n of_o deuterânomy_n this_o word_n ghal_o be_v use_v which_o sigââtieth_v oâtentines_n contrary_a or_o against_o so_o that_o the_o sense_n be_v do_v not_o add_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o word_n which_o i_o command_v and_o again_o you_o shall_v not_o add_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o word_n which_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o for_o so_o be_v that_o particie_n gââl_n take_v in_o the_o 40._o psalm_n or_o according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n 41._o in_o the_o 2._o psalm_n also_o the_o second_o verse_n and_o in_o the_o 14._o of_o number_n the_o 2._o verse_n &_o else_o where_o very_a often_o even_o as_o also_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o answer_v to_o the_o hebrew_n ghal_n signify_v also_o contrary_a or_o against_o when_o the_o apostle_n write_v to_o the_o 6._o 1._o ad_fw-la cor._n 4._o v._n 6._o corinthian_n that_o in_o we_o you_o may_v learn_v one_o not_o to_o be_v puff_v up_o against_o another_o above_o that_o be_v write_v that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o the_o scripture_n the_o which_o say_v we_o must_v not_o be_v puff_v up_o in_o pride_n âs_a s._n chrysostome_n and_o after_o he_o theophilactus_fw-la &_o other_o do_v note_n upon_o that_o place_n the_o which_o place_n some_o bold_o allege_v against_o tradition_n whereas_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o place_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o whole_a 6._o calu_n in_o
king_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o god_n describe_v by_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n this_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n speak_v in_o this_o sort_n of_o the_o multitude_n of_o man_n which_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n even_o as_o say_v our_o lord_n the_o star_n of_o heaven_n 32._o jerem._n 31._o v._o 32._o can_v be_v number_v and_o the_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n measure_v so_o will_v i_o multiply_v the_o seed_n of_o my_o servant_n david_n and_o the_o levit_n my_o servant_n but_o such_o and_o so_o great_a a_o multitude_n of_o man_n can_v be_v invisible_a 4._o in_o like_a manner_n the_o prophet_n isay_n describe_v the_o say_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n with_o it_o thus_o write_v i_o will_v make_v a_o perpetual_a league_n with_o 9_o isa_n 61._o v._n 8._o &_o 9_o they_o and_o their_o seed_n shall_v be_v know_v in_o all_o nation_n and_o their_o of_o spring_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o people_n all_o that_o shall_v see_v they_o shall_v know_v they_o because_o this_o be_v the_o seed_n that_o god_n have_v bless_v where_o it_o be_v manifest_o say_v that_o all_o nation_n even_o the_o infidel_n assoon_o as_o they_o shall_v behold_v and_o see_v the_o church_n they_o shall_v easy_o know_v she_o by_o the_o benefit_n of_o god_n bestow_v upon_o she_o caluin_n himself_o isaiae_n calu_n in_o haeââerba_fw-la isaiae_n acknowledge_v this_o to_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o church_n and_o he_o add_v that_o this_o have_v not_o only_o once_o be_v fullfil_v but_o be_v daily_o fulfil_v 5._o last_o if_o this_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v sometime_o invisible_a god_n himself_o which_o god_n forbid_v we_o shall_v say_v be_v perjure_a who_o swear_v that_o the_o throne_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v his_o kingdom_n 89._o psal_n 8â_n vel_fw-la 89._o shall_v be_v like_o the_o sun_n and_o as_o a_o perfect_a moon_n and_o that_o for_o ever_o but_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o perfect_a or_o full_a moon_n be_v very_o visible_a planet_n easy_o to_o be_v see_v of_o all_o man_n and_o not_o invisible_a 6._o three_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v that_o 15._o isa_n 2._o v._o â_o miâh_o 4._o â_o 1._o psal_n 47._o vel_fw-la 48._o v._n 9_o dan._n 2_o v._n 35._o matt._n 5_o v._n 14_o &_o 15._o city_n which_o be_v situate_v upon_o a_o most_o high_a mountain_n yea_o upon_o a_o mountain_n which_o be_v place_v upon_o the_o top_n of_o mountain_n the_o which_o our_o lord_n will_v strengthen_v for_o ever_o whereof_o christ_n himself_o speak_v a_o city_n place_v upon_o a_o monntayne_n can_v be_v hide_v and_o again_o you_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n neither_o do_v they_o light_v â_o candle_n and_o put_v it_o under_o a_o bushel_n but_o upon_o a_o cadelsticke_a that_o it_o may_v give_v light_n unto_o all_o which_o be_v in_o the_o house_n christ_n therefore_o have_v make_v his_o 2._o s._n aug._n tom._n 9_o in_o 1._o ep._n joan._n tract_n 2._o church_n not_o to_o hide_v it_o but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v perspicuous_a &_o manifest_a unto_o all_o heerupon_o s._n augustine_n what_o more_o say_v he_o shall_v i_o say_v but_o that_o they_o be_v blind_a who_o do_v not_o see_v so_o great_a a_o mountain_n who_o shut_v their_o eye_n against_o a_o candle_n place_v upon_o a_o candlestick_n and_o in_o 1._o s._n aug._n tom._n 7._o de_fw-la unit_fw-la ecc._n c._n 1._o another_o place_n he_o say_v that_o those_o who_o see_v not_o the_o church_n have_v rather_o as_o it_o be_v blindfold_o offend_v against_o this_o mountain_n then_o climb_v up_o unto_o it_o 7._o four_o the_o same_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o foresay_a office_n of_o the_o church_n for_o that_o church_n must_v necessary_o be_v visible_a which_o conceyve_v and_o bring_v forth_o infidel_n to_o christ_n by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o neither_o they_n which_o do_v preach_v be_v invisible_a but_o visible_a and_o the_o preach_v also_o be_v visible_a and_o not_o invisible_a that_o church_n also_o be_v visible_a which_o nourish_v christian_n with_o her_o public_a exhortation_n instruction_n and_o ministration_n of_o sacrament_n and_o good_a example_n which_o explicate_v and_o keep_v the_o 17._o luc._n 10._o v._n 16._o matt._n 18._o v._n 17._o scripture_n who_o govern_v and_o prescribe_v law_n and_o precept_n who_o therefore_o we_o must_v obey_v and_o she_o be_v visible_a unto_o who_o according_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n all_o complaint_n and_o cause_n be_v to_o be_v bring_v and_o last_o she_o be_v visible_a of_o who_o in_o our_o adversity_n we_o must_v demand_v help_n and_o comfort_n who_o public_o confess_v christ_n who_o fight_v with_o the_o serpent_n and_o get_v the_o victory_n triumph_v against_o he_o and_o moreover_o she_o exercise_v all_o those_o office_n which_o be_v before_o allege_v 1._o supra_fw-la c._n 1._o 8._o five_o if_o the_o visible_a church_n shall_v once_o perish_v that_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n be_v false_o i_o believe_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n for_o that_o church_n which_o be_v catholic_a or_o universal_a can_v be_v invisible_a that_o church_n which_o be_v dilate_v 33._o psal_n 88_o v._n 33._o or_o spread_v abroad_o throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n can_v be_v but_o very_o visible_a and_o conspicuous_a and_o that_o not_o in_o one_o only_a place_n but_o in_o many_o and_o hence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v compare_v to_o the_o sun_n and_o the_o moon_n the_o which_o be_v very_o visible_a planet_n and_o easy_o to_o be_v see_v of_o all_o neither_o can_v there_o be_v this_o believe_v communion_n of_o saint_n unless_o the_o say_a saint_n mutual_o be_v manifest_a and_o 26._o 1_o cor._n v._o 12._o 21._o 26._o visible_a one_o unto_o another_o see_v that_o this_o communication_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v consist_v in_o the_o continual_a help_n which_o one_o member_n affoard_v unto_o another_o but_o none_o can_v afford_v any_o help_n to_o that_o which_o be_v invisible_a and_o unknown_a moreover_o this_o communication_n of_o office_n be_v very_o sensible_a and_o visible_a that_o also_o be_v visible_a sever_v s._n aug._n tom._n 2._o ep._n 170._o add_v sever_v which_o be_v a_o corporal_a substance_n and_o general_o in_o many_o place_n wherefore_o s._n augustine_n say_v it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n for_o thou_o to_o behold_v and_o see_v that_o city_n which_o be_v situate_v upon_o a_o mountain_n of_o who_o our_o lord_n in_o the_o gospel_n say_v that_o it_o can_v be_v bid_v for_o she_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n whereupon_o she_o be_v call_v in_o greek_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d 14._o matt._n 5._o v._n 14._o because_o she_o be_v publish_v and_o spread_v over_o all_o the_o whole_a world_n of_o who_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o any_o to_o be_v ignorant_a and_o therefore_o according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n she_o can_v be_v hide_v hitherto_o s._n augustine_n 9_o six_o that_o church_n be_v visible_a which_o contain_v in_o it_o aswell_o the_o good_a 7._o calu._n l._n 4._o iâstit_fw-la c._n 1._o sect_n 7._o as_o the_o evil_a and_o aswell_o the_o predestinate_a as_o the_o reprobate_n as_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o acknowledge_v who_o will_v have_v the_o invisible_a church_n to_o consist_v of_o those_o only_o â8_o matt._n 1â_n v._o â8_o which_o be_v predestinate_a but_o that_o the_o church_n which_o contain_v in_o it_o aswell_o the_o evil_a as_o the_o good_a shall_v continue_v unto_o 7._o calu._n l._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 1._o sect_n 13._o in_o fine_a &_o beza_n c._n 5._o suae_fw-la cons_n art_n 7._o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n those_o word_n of_o christ_n suffer_v both_o to_o grow_v till_o harvest_n do_v evident_o demonstrate_v unto_o us._n yea_o even_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o do_v plain_o confess_v that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v declare_v this_o by_o many_o parable_n it_o may_v therefore_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n even_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o adversary_n that_o there_o be_v not_o only_o a_o invisible_a but_o also_o a_o visible_a church_n to_o wit_n wherein_o the_o good_a be_v mix_v with_o the_o bad_a which_o shall_v always_o continue_v till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n 10._o seaventh_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o affirm_v the_o church_n to_o be_v invisible_a and_o to_o affirm_v that_o it_o have_v whole_o perish_v and_o 3._o supra_fw-la cap._n 3._o that_o there_o be_v no_o church_n at_o all_o the_o which_o as_o we_o have_v declare_v before_o be_v most_o absurd_a for_o this_o invisible_a church_n of_o our_o adversary_n can_v afford_v no_o help_n to_o any_o see_v that_o she_o be_v not_o know_v to_o any_o but_o only_o unto_o god_n according_a to_o that_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n god_n know_v who_o be_v he_o for_o our_o adversary_n will_v have_v the_o
this_o controversy_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n see_v that_o christ_n our_o lord_n come_v into_o this_o world_n that_o he_o may_v make_v open_a and_o know_v the_o way_n to_o eternal_a savation_n not_o to_o one_o nation_n or_o age_n only_o but_o indeed_o to_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o all_o posterity_n it_o be_v a_o very_a absurd_a thing_n to_o think_v that_o this_o one_o only_a way_n to_o eternal_a salvation_n which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n remain_v hide_v and_o unknowen_a to_o all_o nation_n for_o so_o many_o age_n past_a chap._n vii_o that_o this_o visible_a true_a church_n of_o christ_n can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n nothing_o can_v be_v say_v more_o absurd_o they_o that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v nothing_o which_o the_o sectary_n of_o this_o time_n do_v hold_v and_o defend_v with_o great_a pertinacy_n not_o without_o just_a cause_n for_o they_o see_v very_o well_o that_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n have_v for_o these_o many_o year_n past_a remain_v still_o among_o catholic_n only_a visible_a as_o afterward_o we_o shall_v more_o clear_o declare_v but_o if_o they_o shall_v also_o grant_v that_o this_o visible_a church_n can_v err_v they_o shall_v overthow_v themselves_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n wherefore_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v still_o have_v some_o corner_n or_o hole_n to_o slip_v out_o at_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n both_o have_v err_v &_o still_o do_v err_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n then_o the_o which_o nothing_o certain_o be_v more_o absurd_a especial_o see_v that_o they_o affirm_v that_o it_o have_v err_v not_o in_o thing_n of_o small_a moment_n but_o in_o the_o principal_a and_o chief_a point_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v plain_o necesrary_a to_o eternal_a salvation_n yea_o also_o that_o it_o have_v fall_v into_o manifest_a idolatry_n moreover_o that_o it_o have_v not_o only_o fail_v &_o stagger_v in_o faith_n &_o have_v public_o teach_v many_o error_n against_o faith_n but_o have_v also_o compel_v and_o force_v by_o threat_n and_o torment_n all_o to_o idolatry_n and_o last_o that_o it_o have_v do_v thus_o not_o only_o for_o the_o space_n of_o one_o year_n but_o for_o a_o thousand_o or_o at_o least_o 900._o year_n all_o which_o how_o absurd_a they_o be_v we_o will_v now_o declare_v 2._o but_o to_o the_o end_n that_o all_o which_o we_o be_v to_o say_v hereafter_o of_o this_o matter_n may_v be_v the_o better_o understand_v we_o must_v note_v here_o that_o when_o we_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o faith_n that_o by_o this_o word_n faith_n we_o understand_v not_o only_o that_o invisible_a faith_n which_o be_v in_o our_o mind_n but_o also_o visible_a that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o public_a doctrine_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o be_v propose_v or_o set_v down_o to_o be_v believe_v of_o all_o wherefore_o when_o we_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n we_o affirm_v also_o that_o the_o doctrine_n or_o point_n of_o faith_n the_o which_o the_o church_n of_o god_n set_v down_o as_o the_o most_o certain_a and_o undoubted_a word_n of_o god_n can_v be_v false_a but_o the_o very_a word_n of_o god_n itself_o which_o i_o will_v clear_o declare_v by_o these_o argument_n 2._o the_o first_o argument_n be_v deduce_v out_o 1._o supr_fw-la hâ_n ipsa_fw-la contro_fw-la c._n 1._o of_o all_o those_o property_n and_o office_n of_o the_o true_a church_n before_o allege_v out_o of_o scripture_n for_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v once_o take_v away_o all_o the_o foresay_a property_n of_o the_o church_n must_v needs_o perish_v and_o all_o her_o office_n must_v cease_v for_o the_o church_n can_v neither_o be_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n nor_o the_o bodâ_n nor_o the_o kingdom_n nor_o the_o inheritance_n nor_o the_o temple_n of_o christ_n without_o faith_n but_o neither_o can_v the_o church_n without_o faith_n &_o the_o true_a doctrine_n thereof_o either_o conceyve_v bring_v forth_o nourish_v govern_v or_o defend_v christ_n flock_n and_o in_o this_o manner_n the_o church_n of_o christ_n for_o so_o many_o age_n have_v lose_v contro_fw-la supr_fw-la c._n 1._o hâius_fw-la contro_fw-la all_o her_o property_n &_o have_v intermit_v all_o her_o proper_a office_n contrary_a to_o so_o many_o &_o so_o clear_a promise_n of_o holy_a write_v before_o allege_v 4._o the_o second_o argument_n be_v deduce_v out_o of_o most_o clear_a testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o teach_v that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o faith_n for_o first_o christ_n himself_o 18._o v._o at_o 16._o v._n 18._o affirm_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o the_o church_n but_o if_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o faith_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n for_o so_o many_o age_n past_a have_v prevail_v against_o she_o 5._o moreover_o god_n speak_v thus_o by_o ulâ_n isa_n 59_o v._o ulâ_n his_o prophet_n isay_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n this_o be_v my_o league_n with_o they_o say_v our_o lord_n my_o spirit_n which_o be_v in_o thou_o and_o my_o word_n which_o i_o have_v put_v in_o thy_o mouth_n shall_v not_o departout_fw-fr of_o thy_o mouth_n &_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n &_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o thy_o seed_n seed_n satthour_n lord_n from_o hence_o forth_o even_o to_o the_o world_n end_n but_o in_o our_o adversary_n opinion_n the_o word_n which_o god_n have_v put_v into_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n have_v depart_v many_o age_n out_o of_o her_o mouth_n 6._o last_o the_o apostle_n affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o stability_n of_o truth_n 9_o â_o tim._n 1._o v._n 9_o but_o if_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o faith_n and_o teach_v public_o against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o shall_v be_v the_o pillar_n rather_o of_o falsehood_n then_o of_o truth_n some_o of_o our_o adversary_n do_v answer_v unto_o this_o place_n that_o the_o church_n be_v call_v indeed_o the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n because_o it_o do_v not_o err_v when_o it_o follow_v and_o be_v agreeable_a unto_o the_o word_n of_o god_n yet_o nevertheless_o it_o err_v when_o it_o disagree_v from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o this_o be_v a_o very_a frivolous_a answer_n for_o according_a unto_o this_o interpretation_n every_o church_n of_o heretic_n of_o jew_n turk_n yea_o of_o the_o devil_n themselves_o shall_v be_v the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n for_o none_o of_o these_o err_v when_o it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o a_o pillar_n be_v that_o which_o necessary_o and_o always_o uphold_v that_o which_o it_o strengthen_v and_o who_o pillar_n it_o be_v wherefore_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o be_v the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n unless_o it_o always_o stick_v and_o be_v join_v with_o the_o truth_n and_o uphould_v it_o caluin_n therefore_o fine_a calu._n l._n 4._o inst_z c._n 2._o sect_n 1._o in_o fine_a convince_v by_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n write_v that_o if_o the_o true_a church_n be_v the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o the_o kingdom_n where_o lie_n &_o falsehood_n rargn_v can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n thus_o caluin_n 7._o the_o three_o argument_n be_v deduce_v out_o of_o diverse_a absurdity_n which_o ensue_v out_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o adversary_n the_o first_o absurdity_n be_v that_o the_o apostle_n creed_n be_v false_a wherein_o we_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n for_o that_o church_n can_v be_v holy_a which_o want_v the_o true_a faith_n which_o reach_v falsity_n and_o wickedness_n which_o force_v all_o man_n to_o idolatry_n 8._o the_o second_o absurdity_n be_v that_o christ_n himself_o and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v err_v and_o teach_v thing_n both_o false_a and_o wicked_a for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o so_o 28._o luc._n 10._o v._n 16._o joan._n 14._o v._n 26._o act._n 15._o v._n 28._o much_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n as_o it_o be_v of_o christ_n &_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o hear_v the_o you_o say_v christ_n hear_v i_o and_o in_o another_o place_n the_o paraclete_n the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o my_o father_n will_v send_v you_o in_o my_o name_n he_o will_v teach_v you_o all_o thing_n and_o tâe_v apostle_n say_v it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a gâost_n and_o to_o us._n last_o god_n himself_o by_o his_o prophet_n speak_v unto_o the_o church_n affirm_v that_o his_o holy_a spirit_n be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o he_o have_v put_v his_o word_n into_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n which_o shall_v never_o be_v take_v out_o of_o her_o mouth_n from_o hence_o forth_o till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n wherefore_o if_o
follow_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o as_o long_o as_o the_o ordinary_a vocation_n remain_v in_o she_o but_o in_o vain_a do_v they_o add_v these_o condition_n because_o we_o have_v already_o prove_v that_o the_o true_a church_n always_o follow_v the_o word_n of_o god_n nor_o can_v depart_v or_o decline_v in_o any_o sort_n from_o it_o for_o otherwise_o 13._o supr_fw-la c._n praecedent_n ad_fw-la ephes_n 4._o v._n 11._o &_o 13._o she_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n but_o the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n and_o the_o apostle_n also_o express_o say_v that_o the_o ordinary_a vocation_n of_o pastor_n &_o their_o continual_a succession_n shall_v remain_v always_o in_o the_o church_n oâ_n god_n until_o we_o meet_v all_o with_o christ_n in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n by_o which_o wordeâ_n of_o the_o apostle_n caluin_n also_o and_o beza_n be_v 4._o calu._n &_o bez._n inea_fw-la verba_fw-la ad_fw-la ephes_n âtem_fw-la cal._n l._n 4._o inst_z c._n 3._o sect_n 4._o convince_v do_v confess_v that_o there_o must_v always_o be_v pastor_n and_o doctor_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o say_a church_n can_v consist_v without_o they_o the_o same_o also_o their_o confession_n make_v at_o rochel_n acknowledge_v in_o the_o 25._o article_n 9_o some_o of_o our_o adversary_n do_v here_o object_v unto_o we_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n for_o say_v they_o their_o doctrine_n be_v never_o approve_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o the_o jew_n whereas_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v extraordinary_a but_o this_o be_v a_o very_a frivolus_fw-la and_o odious_a comparison_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n with_o their_o minister_n for_o it_o be_v express_o foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n that_o christ_n be_v to_o abrogate_v the_o old_a law_n and_o the_o carnal_a vocation_n and_o succession_n thereof_o and_o that_o he_o be_v to_o ordain_v another_o more_o excellent_a and_o spiritual_a the_o which_o he_o effect_v indeed_o wherefore_o see_v that_o now_o the_o apostle_n have_v another_o far_o more_o excellent_a vocation_n institute_v by_o christ_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n they_o shall_v ask_v any_o vocation_n from_o moses_n but_o we_o read_v not_o where_o that_o the_o vocation_n ordain_v by_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v abrogate_a by_o any_o other_o whosoever_o but_o contrariwise_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v plain_o teach_v that_o the_o vocation_n ordain_v by_o christ_n shall_v endure_v till_o the_o end_n of_o 13._o matt._n 28._o v._o ult._n ephes_n 4._o v._n 2._o &_o 13._o the_o world_n wherefore_o our_o adversary_n can_v prove_v nothing_o by_o this_o argument_n unless_o they_o will_v bring_v in_o and_o establish_v another_o messiah_n and_o a_o new_a lawmaker_n who_o have_v authority_n to_o abrogate_v and_o change_v the_o law_n and_o vocation_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o blasphemy_n of_o both_o turk_n and_o jew_n finis_fw-la of_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o second_o controversy_n chap._n i._o whether_o the_o church_n be_v the_o foundation_n and_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n if_o the_o pertinacy_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v not_o so_o great_a it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o define_v this_o question_n out_o of_o those_o few_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n for_o see_v that_o our_o faith_n rely_v upon_o truth_n that_o be_v to_o say_v upon_o the_o most_o true_a word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o 15._o 1._o ad_fw-la tim._n 3._o v._n 15._o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o this_o truth_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n as_o afterward_o we_o will_v declare_v more_o at_o large_a but_o because_o our_o adversary_n go_v about_o to_o obscure_v this_o great_a and_o renown_a praise_n of_o our_o church_n we_o will_v treat_v of_o this_o matter_n more_o exact_o especial_o 16._o cap._n 13._o seq_n §._o 16._o because_o this_o be_v a_o question_n of_o great_a importance_n see_v that_o thereon_o depend_v our_o whole_a faith_n for_o every_o thing_n rely_v and_o depend_v of_o his_o foundation_n moreover_o hereby_o be_v declare_v the_o great_a excellency_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n hence_o also_o other_o opinion_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v prove_v which_o our_o adversary_n deny_v their_o error_n confute_v and_o they_o themselves_o very_o easy_o convince_v and_o that_o the_o true_a state_n of_o this_o controversy_n may_v the_o better_o be_v understand_v three_o thing_n be_v to_o note_a 2._o the_o first_o be_v that_o every_o science_n and_o doctrine_n have_v her_o ground_n &_o principle_n out_o of_o which_o all_o other_o thing_n be_v deduce_v prove_v and_o do_v depend_v wherefore_o we_o must_v here_o diligent_o examine_v and_o search_v out_o the_o true_a principle_n of_o our_o faith_n lest_o otherwise_o our_o faith_n become_v doubtful_a and_o uncertain_a 3._o the_o second_o be_v that_o there_o be_v two_o principle_n of_o our_o faith_n the_o one_o that_o god_n be_v true_a and_o the_o author_n of_o truth_n the_o other_o that_o these_o thing_n which_o we_o believe_v be_v speak_v and_o reveal_v unto_o we_o by_o god_n there_o be_v less_o difficulty_n of_o the_o former_a principle_n for_o all_o who_o conâeââe_n that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n may_v easy_o know_v even_o by_o natural_a reason_n that_o he_o be_v true_a or_o rather_o the_o very_a truth_n itself_o and_o see_v that_o he_o be_v the_o chief_a good_a he_o can_v deceive_v no_o body_n and_o see_v that_o he_o be_v wisdom_n itself_o he_o 18._o ad_fw-la heb._n 6._o v._o 18._o can_v be_v deceive_v hereupon_o the_o apostle_n take_v this_o as_o a_o principle_n manifest_o know_v by_o itself_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o god_n to_o lie_v 4._o but_o the_o doubt_n and_o difficulty_n which_o we_o concâyve_v concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n do_v especial_o arise_v of_o the_o second_o principle_n to_o wit_n because_o we_o know_v not_o certain_o that_o such_o thing_n as_o we_o believe_v be_v reveal_v by_o god_n for_o hence_o arise_v the_o whole_a controversy_n with_o jew_n turk_n &_o heretic_n for_o all_o do_v confess_v that_o god_n be_v true_a but_o the_o turk_n say_v that_o their_o alcoran_n be_v reveal_v unto_o they_o by_o god_n the_o jew_n their_o talmud_n the_o anabaptist_n their_o bible_n corrupt_v &_o maim_v by_o they_o the_o antitrinitarians_a their_o blasphemy_n utter_v against_o the_o bless_a trinity_n the_o lutheran_n their_o opinion_n the_o caluinist_n they_o and_o the_o catholic_n they_o and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o we_o need_v great_o some_o sure_a foundation_n principle_n rule_n and_o mean_n whereby_o we_o may_v know_v certain_o which_o be_v the_o doctrine_n indeed_o reveal_v by_o god_n and_o which_o be_v not_o otherwise_o our_o faith_n will_v always_o remain_v doubtful_a and_o uncertain_a 5._o the_o three_o be_v that_o god_n be_v accustom_v three_o way_n to_o assure_v his_o church_n of_o this_o his_o revelation_n the_o first_o way_n be_v when_o god_n himself_o appear_v from_o heaven_n and_o speak_v to_o his_o church_n for_o so_o in_o time_n past_a he_o speak_v unto_o all_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n when_o he_o give_v they_o the_o table_n of_o 22._o exod._n 20._o v._o 22._o his_o law_n in_o the_o mount_n sinai_n 6._o the_o second_o be_v when_o god_n speak_v to_o one_o alone_a from_o heaven_n and_o he_o send_v he_o to_o the_o church_n that_o he_o may_v reveal_v unto_o the_o whole_a church_n such_o thing_n as_o god_n have_v speak_v unto_o he_o so_o in_o time_n pass_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n god_n speak_v by_o 12._o exod._n 24._o v._o 2._o 3._o ad_fw-la gal._n 2._o v._n 12._o himself_o to_o moses_n and_o moses_n reveal_v the_o same_o thing_n to_o the_o people_n and_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n christ_n in_o this_o manner_n reveal_v his_o ghosptell_n to_o s._n paul_n which_o he_o afterward_o reveal_v unto_o other_o but_o these_o two_o way_n be_v extraordinary_a and_o be_v cease_v as_o all_o do_v confess_v except_v only_o a_o few_o anabaptist_n and_o swenkfeldian_o who_o madness_n and_o folly_n all_o man_n disprove_v 7._o the_o three_o way_n be_v ordinary_a which_o always_o remain_v in_o the_o church_n and_o whereof_o the_o whole_a controversy_n be_v for_o almost_o all_o lutheran_n &_o the_o pure_a sort_n of_o caluinist_n will_v have_v the_o sole_a scripture_n to_o be_v the_o foundation_n and_o rule_n whereby_o we_o may_v certain_o know_v the_o true_a revelation_n of_o 2._o cal._n l_o 1._o justit_fw-la c._n 7._o sect_n 1._o &_o 2._o god_n from_o the_o false_a but_o caluân_n himself_o at_o the_o first_o blush_n seem_v to_o attribute_v this_o to_o the_o sole_a scripture_n and_o very_o contumelious_o inveygh_v against_o catholic_n who_o deny_v it_o who_o therefore_o he_o call_v brawl_v and_o sacrilegious_a person_n yet_o
a_o little_a after_o he_o reduce_v the_o principal_a 5._o cal._n eodem_fw-la c._n 7._o sect_n 4._o infine_n &_o sect_n 5._o and_o chief_a certaynty_a of_o scripture_n and_o of_o our_o whole_a faith_n to_o the_o particular_a and_o private_a spirit_n of_o every_o believer_n the_o late_a caluinist_n do_v put_v two_o ground_n or_o rule_n of_o faith_n to_o wit_v the_o scripture_n and_o this_o private_a spirit_n but_o catholic_n do_v teach_v that_o neither_o the_o scripture_n alone_o be_v sufficient_a nor_o this_o private_a spirit_n together_o with_o the_o scripture_n but_o moreover_o the_o spirit_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o whole_a &_o visible_a church_n be_v necessary_a and_o this_o be_v the_o true_a state_n of_o of_o this_o question_n 8._o we_o will_v therefore_o explicate_v four_o thing_n that_o this_o whole_a controversy_n may_v more_o clear_o be_v define_v first_o what_o be_v the_o property_n and_o condition_n of_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n for_o by_o these_o the_o ground_n itself_o will_v easy_o be_v know_v for_o even_o as_o by_o the_o property_n of_o a_o man_n it_o may_v be_v be_v know_v who_o be_v a_o true_a man_n and_o by_o the_o propirty_n of_o any_o other_o thing_n the_o thing_n itself_o many_o be_v know_v so_o by_o the_o property_n of_o the_o ground_n of_o say_v the_o ground_n itself_o will_v be_v know_v second_o it_o shall_v be_v prove_v that_o the_o scripture_n alone_o be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a ground_n or_o rule_v of_o faith_n three_o that_o neither_o any_o private_a spirit_n will_v suffice_v four_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v the_o most_o true_a ground_n and_o rule_v of_o faith_n chap._n ii_o the_o property_n of_o the_o ground_n and_o rule_v of_o our_o faith_n be_v allege_v there_o be_v ten_o property_n of_o the_o ground_n or_o rule_v of_o faith_n and_o they_o be_v so_o manifest_a and_o certain_a that_o none_o can_v doubt_v thereof_o the_o first_o be_v the_o continual_a and_o never_o interrupt_v duration_n thereof_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n for_o even_o as_o faith_n and_o the_o church_n do_v always_o endure_v &_o continue_v so_o must_v also_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n see_v that_o nothing_o can_v consist_v without_o his_o foundation_n and_o ground_n 2._o the_o second_o property_n be_v the_o most_o certain_a and_o undoubted_a truth_n thereof_o in_o so_o much_o that_o it_o neither_o can_v deceyve_v any_o nor_o be_v deceive_v in_o any_o thing_n appertain_v necessary_o to_o salvation_n for_o otherwise_o it_o shall_v be_v uncertain_a and_o doubtful_a yea_o also_o the_o faith_n itself_o shall_v be_v false_a and_o hurtful_a unto_o us._n 3._o the_o three_o property_n be_v the_o certainty_n thereof_o on_o our_o part_n for_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v not_o only_o certain_a in_o itself_o but_o also_o to_o us._n because_o error_n and_o uncertaynty_a be_v engender_v in_o we_o if_o the_o thing_n be_v ambiguous_o and_o obscure_o propose_v how_o certain_a soever_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o 4._o the_o four_o property_n be_v the_o strength_n &_o immutability_n thereof_o so_o that_o this_o ground_n can_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v deprave_a change_v or_o corrupt_v for_o otherwise_o truth_n will_v sometime_o perish_v &_o there_o will_v arise_v some_o error_n against_o faith_n 5._o the_o five_o property_n be_v the_o fullness_n &_o sufficiency_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o must_v contain_v all_o thing_n appertain_v to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n see_v that_o nothing_o can_v consist_v without_o his_o ground_n or_o foundation_n 6._o the_o sixth_o property_n be_v the_o necessity_n thereof_o that_o be_v to_o say_v it_o must_v necessary_o be_v receive_v of_o all_o who_o have_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o because_o without_o it_o true_a faith_n can_v consist_v even_o as_o the_o building_n can_v continue_v without_o the_o foundation_n 7._o the_o seven_o property_n be_v that_o it_o be_v a_o manifest_a sign_n and_o token_n whereby_o christian_n be_v distinguish_v from_o infidel_n for_o he_o which_o want_v the_o ground_n and_o rule_v of_o faith_n be_v a_o infidel_n but_o he_o who_o retain_v it_o be_v a_o true_a believer_n 8._o the_o eight_o property_n be_v that_o in_o every_o article_n and_o conclusion_n of_o faith_n this_o principle_n and_o ground_n be_v virtual_o contain_v see_v that_o out_o of_o it_o all_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v deduce_v &_o they_o receive_v their_o certaynty_a from_o it_o 9_o the_o nânth_o property_n be_v that_o it_o not_o only_o move_v christian_n to_o believe_v but_o that_o it_o also_o convince_v the_o infidel_n for_o otherwise_o the_o way_n to_o faith_n and_o eternal_a salvation_n shall_v not_o be_v know_v or_o open_v to_o infidel_n 10._o the_o ten_o property_n be_v that_o it_o be_v contain_v express_o in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n wherein_o all_o the_o first_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v contain_v for_o the_o apostle_n after_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o so_o forgetful_a that_o in_o the_o creed_n or_o summary_n of_o faith_n which_o they_o set_v down_o to_o be_v believe_v of_o all_o they_o will_v let_v pass_v the_o first_o and_o chief_a ground_n of_o faith_n and_o thus_o much_o of_o the_o property_n of_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n chap._n iii_o that_o the_o scripturealone_n be_v not_o the_o ground_n or_o rule_v of_o faith_n that_o the_o scripture_n alone_o be_v not_o the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n we_o have_v already_o declare_v by_o the_o property_n of_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n before_o allege_a for_o of_o those_o ten_o property_n the_o scripture_n have_v only_o one_o to_o wit_n truth_n but_o all_o the_o other_o property_n be_v want_v unto_o it_o the_o which_o we_o clear_o demonstrate_v in_o this_o sort_n first_o of_o all_o a_o perpetual_a duration_n and_o continuance_n be_v want_v for_o the_o holy_a scripture_n begin_v first_o under_o the_o old_a law_n in_o moses_n time_n whereas_o two_o thousand_o year_n before_o there_o be_v both_o true_a believer_n and_o a_o church_n in_o like_a manner_n in_o the_o new_a law_n the_o apostle_n begin_v to_o write_v some_o year_n after_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n 2._o second_o the_o certaynty_a on_o our_o part_n 15._o supr_fw-la contro_fw-la 1._o c._n 5._o &_o infra_fw-la haccont_v 6._o cap._n 15._o be_v want_v see_v that_o we_o know_v not_o which_o be_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n by_o the_o scripture_n itself_o but_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n as_o we_o have_v prove_v before_o and_o will_v also_o more_o at_o large_a declare_v hereafter_o 3._o three_o the_o foresay_a strength_n &_o immutability_n be_v want_v for_o every_o part_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n consider_v in_o it_o own_o nature_n be_v subject_a to_o many_o alteration_n and_o falsification_n for_o it_o may_v be_v destroy_v 4._o supra_fw-la controu_n 1._o cap._n 4._o it_o may_v be_v corrupt_v it_o may_v be_v wrest_v to_o contrary_a sense_n whereof_o we_o have_v speak_v before_o 4._o four_o that_o fullness_n and_o sufficiency_n be_v want_v because_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v not_o expressy_a contain_v sequent_a supr_fw-la controver_n 1._o c._n 26._o &_o sequent_a in_o holy_a scripture_n as_o we_o have_v also_o declare_v before_o 5._o five_o the_o foresay_a necessity_n be_v want_v for_o without_o the_o holy_a scripture_n there_o be_v in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n for_o the_o space_n of_o two_o thousand_o year_n many_o true_a believer_n and_o also_o long_o after_o christ_n yea_o even_o till_o the_o time_n of_o s._n irenaeus_n that_o be_v to_o say_v almost_o two_o hundred_o year_n there_o be_v many_o nation_n who_o sincere_o believe_v 4._o iren._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 4._o in_o christ_n without_o any_o holy_a scripture_n as_o s._n irenaeus_n himself_o testify_v last_o albeit_o infidel_n shall_v burn_v all_o the_o bibles_n yet_o the_o faith_n of_o christian_n shall_v not_o therefore_o perish_v or_o be_v whole_o overthrow_v therefore_o our_o faith_n do_v not_o necessary_o depend_v of_o the_o scripture_n 6._o six_o the_o seven_o property_n be_v also_o want_v for_o by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o true_a christian_n be_v not_o distinguish_v from_o infidel_n because_o almost_o all_o heretic_n do_v both_o now_o receyve_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o in_o time_n pass_v also_o receyve_v they_o 7._o seaventh_o the_o eight_o property_n be_v want_v for_o there_o be_v many_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o rely_v upon_o the_o tradition_n of_o 27._o supra_fw-la contr._n 1._o c._n 26._o &_o 27._o the_o church_n only_o without_o any_o express_a scripture_n at_o all_o as_o we_o have_v declare_v before_o 8._o eight_o the_o nine_o property_n be_v want_v for_o turk_n and_o other_o gentill_n who_o be_v only_o lead_v by_o natural_a reason_n be_v very_o seldom_o or_o never_o convert_v by_o scripture_n only_o but_o we_o
add_v also_o some_o other_o natural_a reason_n and_o perwasion_n that_o they_o may_v be_v convert_v for_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n in_o holy_a scripture_n which_o seem_v opposite_a to_o natural_a reason_n as_o the_o mysterye_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n incarnation_n &_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n 9_o nine_o there_o want_v last_o of_o all_o the_o ten_o property_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o extant_a of_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n 10._o the_o holy_a scripture_n indeed_o be_v the_o ground_n and_o reason_n why_o we_o believe_v many_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o not_o the_o ground_n why_o we_o believe_v all_o moreover_o neither_o be_v it_o the_o first_o ground_n of_o all_o that_o we_o believe_v by_o it_o for_o the_o scripture_n itself_o be_v prove_v by_o some_o other_o more_o general_a ground_n to_o wit_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n wherefore_o the_o scripture_n be_v only_o a_o particular_a ground_n and_o not_o a_o general_a a_o mediate_a and_o not_o immediate_a a_o secondary_a and_o not_o the_o first_o and_o chief_a rule_n of_o faith_n chap._n four_o that_o the_o private_a or_o particular_a spirit_n of_o every_o one_o be_v not_o the_o ground_n or_o rule_v of_o faith_n that_o no_o private_a spirit_n of_o any_o can_v be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v far_o more_o evident_a by_o the_o same_o property_n now_o allege_v for_o none_o of_o these_o ten_o property_n do_v agree_v with_o the_o private_a spirit_n of_o every_o one_o that_o believe_v the_o which_o we_o declare_v by_o these_o argument_n 1._o first_o there_o want_v the_o foresay_a continuance_n for_o there_o be_v no_o private_a or_o particular_a person_n who_o have_v continue_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n or_o shall_v endure_v till_o the_o end_n thereof_o as_o faith_n have_v continue_v 2._o second_o there_o want_v truth_n because_o there_o be_v no_o private_a man_n to_o be_v find_v which_o can_v err_v and_o be_v deceive_v for_o as_o witness_v the_o apostle_n every_o man_n be_v 4._o rom._n 3._o v._n 4._o a_o liar_n 3._o three_o there_o want_v certainty_n in_o propose_v matter_n of_o faith_n unto_o we_o because_o none_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o any_o private_a person_n can_v have_v such_o a_o spirit_n yea_o even_o in_o our_o adversary_n judgement_n for_o the_o predestinate_a only_o in_o their_o opinion_n have_v this_o spirit_n even_o as_o they_o only_o in_o their_o judgment_n have_v the_o true_a faith_n but_o the_o predestinate_a be_v know_v to_o none_o but_o only_o to_o god_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n god_n know_v who_o be_v he_o the_o which_o caluin_n 2._o 2._o tim._n 2_o v._n 19_o cal._n l._n 4._o inst_z c._n 1._o sect_n 2._o express_o teach_v 4._o four_o the_o foresay_a strength_n and_o immutability_n be_v want_v for_o that_o a_o private_a man_n have_v not_o that_o strength_n and_o immutability_n of_o his_o doctrine_n our_o adversary_n themselves_o confess_v and_o experience_n teach_v we_o that_o they_o often_o time_n change_v their_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o at_o diverse_a time_n they_o teach_v plain_a contrary_n yea_o they_o confess_v that_o this_o their_o private_a spirit_n be_v not_o permanent_a with_o they_o but_o often_o time_n leave_v and_o forsake_v they_o the_o which_o they_o prove_v out_o of_o that_o place_n of_o the_o 29._o or_o 30._o psalm_n the_o eight_o verse_n thou_o have_v turn_v thy_o face_n from_o i_o and_o i_o become_v finem_fw-la with_fw-mi disp_n paris_n a_o 1566._o in_o disp_n 1._o diâi_fw-la sub_fw-la finem_fw-la trouble_v for_o thus_o they_o affirm_v in_o that_o famous_a disputation_n have_v at_o paris_n anno_fw-la 1566._o 5._o five_o there_o want_v that_o fullness_n &_o sufficiency_n because_o no_o private_a man_n can_v define_v all_o point_n of_o faith_n see_v that_o many_o be_v define_v before_o he_o be_v bear_v against_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n and_o there_o will_v be_v many_o thing_n define_v in_o the_o church_n after_o his_o death_n assoon_o as_o there_o shall_v arise_v any_o new_a heresy_n 6._o six_o there_o want_v necessity_n for_o before_o there_o be_v any_o private_a man_n which_o now_o live_v there_o be_v true_a faith_n and_o the_o same_o faith_n will_v continue_v after_o he_o be_v dead_a 7._o seaventh_o there_o want_v the_o seven_o property_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n see_v that_o by_o this_o private_a spirit_n a_o christian_a can_v be_v distinguish_v from_o a_o infidel_n but_o in_o truth_n all_o heretic_n do_v brag_v and_o boast_v that_o they_o have_v this_o private_a spirit_n whereas_o notwithstanding_o one_o condemn_v or_o rather_o damn_v another_o 8._o eight_o there_o want_v the_o eight_o property_n for_o no_o point_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v certain_o deduce_v out_o of_o this_o private_a spirit_n only_o see_v that_o it_o be_v oftentimes_o uncertain_a and_o deceitful_a 9_o nine_o there_o want_v the_o nine_o property_n for_o it_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a thing_n for_o one_o to_o endeavour_v to_o convert_v a_o infidel_n to_o the_o faith_n by_o brag_v only_o that_o he_o have_v this_o private_a spirit_n the_o which_o none_o can_v either_o see_v or_o understand_v 10._o ten_o there_o want_v the_o ten_o and_o last_o property_n because_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o this_o private_a and_o particular_a spirit_n in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n 11._o and_o the_o true_a spirit_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o every_o faithful_a soul_n whereof_o the_o apostle_n speak_v when_o he_o say_v that_o we_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o say_v be_v not_o the_o 13._o 2._o cor._n 4._o v._n 13._o ground_n or_o reason_n of_o faith_n we_o here_o speak_v of_o but_o it_o be_v the_o help_n of_o god_n or_o the_o supernatural_a gift_n of_o faith_n whereby_o our_o understanding_n be_v help_v to_o believe_v and_o it_o be_v in_o regard_n of_o our_o understanding_n as_o it_o be_v the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n but_o we_o speak_v in_o this_o place_n of_o the_o formal_a cause_n or_o reason_n of_o faith_n as_o it_o appertain_v to_o the_o object_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o which_o we_o know_v what_o be_v the_o true_a reveal_v word_n of_o god_n and_o what_o be_v not_o for_o albeit_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o gift_n of_o faith_n move_v we_o to_o believe_v yet_o they_o do_v not_o rash_o move_v we_o without_o any_o reason_n or_o ground_n 4._o eccles_n 19_o v._n 4._o for_o he_o as_o the_o wise_a man_n say_v who_o believe_v quick_o be_v light_n of_o hart_n but_o with_o a_o solid_a and_o sure_a ground_n according_a to_o those_o word_n of_o 1._o 1._o joan._n 4._o v._n 1._o s._n john_n do_v not_o dear_o belove_v believe_v every_o spirit_n but_o prove_v the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n but_o this_o proof_n and_o trial_n necessary_o require_v some_o good_a reason_n and_o sure_a ground_n whereof_o we_o will_v speak_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n 12._o last_o it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o we_o do_v here_o disâute_v of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n as_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o all_o to_o attain_v their_o eternal_a salvation_n &_o not_o of_o the_o special_a faith_n of_o one_o or_o other_o the_o which_o we_o know_v very_o well_o may_v arise_v or_o proceed_v from_o some_o particular_a or_o extraordinary_a revelation_n of_o god_n but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o catholic_a faith_n not_o a_o ordinary_a but_o a_o extraordinary_a faith_n not_o to_o be_v admit_v general_o of_o all_o till_o it_o be_v approve_v and_o receyve_v by_o the_o church_n as_o present_o we_o will_v declare_v more_o at_o large_a chap._n v._o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v the_o ground_n or_o rule_v of_o our_o faith_n that_o the_o catholic_a and_o visible_a church_n be_v the_o most_o solid_a and_o true_a ground_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v manifest_o prove_v by_o the_o former_a property_n of_o the_o ground_n of_o faith_n for_o all_o those_o ten_o property_n do_v very_o well_o agree_v to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o nothing_o else_o beside_o the_o church_n have_v the_o first_o property_n to_o wit_n a_o continual_a and_o never-interrupted_n controu_n supâ_n cap._n 3._o huius_fw-la controu_n duration_n for_o the_o church_n have_v always_o continue_v as_o we_o have_v already_o prove_v even_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o our_o adversary_n 2._o the_o church_n also_o have_v the_o second_o property_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o most_o certain_a controu_n supr_fw-la cap._n 7._o huius_fw-la controu_n and_o undoubted_a truth_n because_o she_o can_v never_o err_v in_o faith_n as_o we_o have_v prove_v before_o 3._o she_o have_v also_o the_o three_o property_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o infallible_a certainty_n on_o our_o part_n because_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n we_o may_v have_v the_o great_a certainty_n perspicuity_n and_o evidency_n that_o possible_o we_o can_v
be_v to_o say_v to_o uphould_v the_o house_n &_o to_o strengthen_v it_o the_o apostle_n here_o attribute_v they_o both_o to_o the_o church_n the_o one_o when_o he_o call_v hâr_o the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n the_o other_o when_o ââ_o call_v she_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o same_o truth_n for_o the_o pillar_n also_o of_o the_o earth_n according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n 4._o job._n â_o v._o 6._o psal_n 74._o vel_fw-la inxta_fw-la hebrâos_fw-la 79._o v._o 4._o phrase_n do_v signify_v the_o low_a foundation_n of_o the_o earth_n so_o god_n be_v say_v to_o shake_v the_o pillar_n of_o the_o earth_n &_o elsewhere_o to_o strengthen_v the_o pillar_n of_o the_o earth_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o very_a foundation_n thereof_o 17._o these_o so_o manifest_a and_o perspicuous_a 15._o calu._n inâ_n ad_fw-la tim._n 3._o v._n 15._o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v compel_v caluin_n at_o the_o last_o to_o be_v of_o our_o opinion_n albeit_o after_o his_o accustom_a manner_n at_o the_o first_o he_o wrongful_o slaunder_v we_o affirm_v that_o catholic_n hold_v or_o to_o use_v his_o own_o word_n do_v blab_v out_o this_o horrible_a blasphemy_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v not_o strong_a enough_o unless_o it_o be_v uphoulden_a by_o the_o shoulder_n of_o man_n and_o that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v uncertain_a till_o by_o humble_a prayer_n as_o it_o be_v it_o borrow_v some_o certaymy_n from_o man_n and_o afterward_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o apostle_n in_o this_o place_n will_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v support_v by_o the_o pure_a preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o that_o which_o he_o say_v first_o be_v a_o mere_a slander_n for_o we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o truth_n or_o the_o word_n of_o god_n absolute_o and_o consider_v precise_o in_o itself_o receive_v it_o certainty_n and_o strength_n from_o the_o church_n for_o in_o this_o sense_n it_o receyve_v a_o most_o perfect_a strength_n and_o large_a authority_n from_o god_n himself_o but_o in_o regard_n of_o man_n and_o in_o consideration_n of_o our_o knowledge_n it_o receive_v it_o certainty_n from_o the_o church_n fine_a infra_fw-la hac_fw-la controu_n cap._n 16._o in_o fine_a as_o afterward_o we_o will_v declare_v more_o at_o large_a the_o which_o also_o caluin_n in_o the_o word_n immediate_o follow_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v most_o true_a when_o he_o write_v in_o this_o 17._o calu._n loco_fw-la citato_fw-la rom._n 10._o five_o 17._o sort_n s._n paul_n simple_o understand_v say_v caluin_n that_o which_o in_o other_o word_n he_o say_v in_o the_o ten_o chapter_n to_o the_o roman_n because_o faith_n be_v by_o hear_v there_o will_v be_v no_o faith_n unless_o there_o he_o some_o that_o preach_v therefore_o in_o regard_n of_o man_n the_o church_n support_v the_o truth_n because_o it_o make_v it_o famous_a by_o her_o praise_n and_o commendation_n because_o the_o retain_v it_o in_o sincerity_n and_o purity_n and_o because_o the_o deliver_v and_o sendoth_a it_o to_o her_o posterity_n thus_o caluin_n 18._o but_o that_o which_o second_o he_o add_v that_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v support_v and_o uphold_v by_o the_o pure_a preach_n of_o the_o church_n be_v indeed_o most_o true_a but_o he_o shall_v have_v consider_v that_o this_o pure_a preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n can_v be_v find_v but_o only_o in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o no_o other_o but_o man_n can_v preach_v the_o pure_a gospel_n wherefore_o if_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n be_v sustain_v by_o the_o pure_a preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o necessary_o follow_v also_o that_o the_o church_n must_v be_v sustain_v by_o man_n and_o consequent_o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o gound_z of_o truth_n albeit_o not_o absolute_o yet_o in_o regard_n of_o we_o and_o our_o 15._o beza_n in_o 1._o ad_fw-la tim._n 3._o v._n 15._o knowledge_n so_o as_o beza_n also_o be_v force_v to_o confess_v the_o same_o explicate_v those_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n understand_v this_o say_v beza_n not_o simple_o in_o itself_o but_o in_o regard_n of_o us._n thus_o he_o 19_o it_o be_v therefore_o manifest_a as_o well_o out_o of_o caluin_n as_o beza_n that_o the_o church_n in_o regard_n of_o we_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o truth_n or_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o consequent_o of_o our_o faith_n which_o rely_v thereon_o but_o that_o which_o in_o regard_n of_o man_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o be_v the_o true_a ground_n thereof_o because_o our_o faith_n can_v well_o nor_o must_v not_o be_v consider_v but_o in_o regard_n of_o man_n see_v that_o our_o faith_n can_v be_v find_v but_o in_o man_n only_o if_o therefore_o in_o regard_n of_o man_n the_o church_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v also_o most_o true_o and_o necessary_o the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n 20._o furthermore_o that_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n do_v constant_o hold_v the_o preach_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n those_o excellent_a word_n of_o s._n augustine_n do_v manifest_o declare_v when_o he_o 3._o s._n aug._n tom._n 6._o contra_fw-la epist_n manich._n cap._n 5._o calu._n l._n 1._o instit_fw-la sect_n 3._o write_v thus_o dispute_v against_o the_o manichee_n ay_o say_v he_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n but_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n move_v i_o thereunto_o this_o sentence_n of_o s._n augustine_n vex_v our_o adversary_n very_a much_o caluin_n go_v about_o to_o persuade_v the_o ignorant_a people_n that_o s._n augustin_n speak_v of_o himself_o yet_o remain_v a_o manichean_a heretic_n and_o not_o of_o himself_o as_o be_v convert_v and_o make_v a_o catholic_a but_o this_o be_v a_o ridiculous_a evasion_n for_o the_o word_n which_o follow_v a_o little_a after_o do_v show_n that_o this_o be_v a_o false_a interpretation_n of_o caluin_n if_o thou_o do_v hold_v thyself_o to_o the_o gospel_n s._n augustine_n speak_v unto_o a_o manichean_a heretic_n i_o will_v hold_v myself_o to_o those_o by_o who_o commandment_n i_o belive_v the_o gospel_n he_o speak_v therefore_o of_o himself_o as_o now_o be_v a_o catholic_a and_o after_o a_o few_o word_n who_o authority_n say_v he_o be_v infringe_v &_o weaken_v i_o can_v not_o now_o even_o believe_v the_o gospel_n itself_o where_o he_o show_v plain_o that_o our_o faith_n do_v so_o depend_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n that_o it_o be_v weaken_v or_o take_v a_o way_n it_o can_v not_o remain_v or_o continue_v by_o any_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o it_o be_v false_a which_o junius_n write_v that_o s._n augustine_n do_v only_o speak_v of_o the_o accidentary_a and_o not_o of_o the_o necessary_a cause_n 21._o other_o say_v that_o s._n augustine_n do_v speak_v of_o this_o or_o that_o book_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o not_o of_o the_o whole_a gospel_n in_o general_a but_o the_o very_a word_n of_o s._n augustine_n do_v teach_v the_o contrary_a because_o he_o speak_v every_o where_n of_o the_o gospel_n itself_o in_o general_a moreover_o one_o and_o the_o same_o reason_n be_v of_o one_o book_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n as_o concern_v faith_n 22._o other_o last_o do_v answer_n that_o s._n augustine_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n of_o his_o time_n but_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n wherein_o be_v the_o apostle_n who_o approve_v the_o gospel_n but_o this_o solution_n be_v also_o easy_o refute_v out_o of_o the_o word_n next_o follow_v to_o who_o say_v s._n augustin_n i_o have_v obey_v say_v believe_v the_o gospel_n why_o shall_v i_o not_o obey_v they_o then_o say_v unto_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v manicheus_fw-la but_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o primitive_a church_n speak_v nothing_o of_o manicheus_fw-la but_o that_o church_n only_o which_o be_v in_o s._n augustine_n time_n say_v unto_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v manicheus_fw-la for_o manicheus_fw-la live_v many_o year_n 4._o 8._o aug._n tom._n 6._o contra_fw-la faustum_n l._n 13._o c._n 4._o after_o the_o primitive_a church_n yea_o even_o after_o s._n cyprian_n that_o be_v to_o say_v almost_o three_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n as_o the_o same_o s._n augustine_n testify_v and_o it_o be_v otherwise_o sufficient_o well_o know_v that_o the_o manichean_a heresy_n be_v unknown_a in_o the_o world_n before_o the_o year_n 277._o see_v baronius_n in_o his_o 2._o tom_n in_o the_o year_n 277._o in_o the_o 2._o number_n and_o other_o follow_v chap._n vi_o the_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v confute_v now_o it_o remain_v we_o answer_v to_o the_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n for_o by_o our_o answer_n the_o difficulty_n of_o this_o who_o controversy_n will_v be_v more_o
faith_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o church_n we_o speak_v of_o the_o general_a faith_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n 19_o there_o be_v other_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n but_o we_o may_v easy_o answer_v ult._n canus_n l._n 2._o de_fw-la âocis_fw-la theol._n c._n 8._o bellar._n l_o 3_o deverbo_fw-la dei_fw-la c._n ult._n thereunto_o by_o that_o whiâh_n have_v be_v already_o say_v the_o which_o melâhior_n canus_n and_o bellarmine_n do_v prosecute_v and_o handle_v more_o at_o large_a unto_o who_o we_o refer_v the_o reader_n for_o they_o be_v borrow_v of_o the_o anabaptist_n &_o libertine_n whereby_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n themselves_o be_v no_o less_o diminish_v and_o infringe_v then_o that_o of_o the_o church_n chap._n vii_o that_o the_o church_n do_v not_o only_o give_v a_o bare_a testimony_n but_o also_o authority_n to_o the_o scripture_n this_o matter_n be_v here_o brief_o to_o be_v examine_v that_o it_o may_v more_o clear_o be_v understand_v how_o necessary_a the_o church_n approbation_n be_v to_o the_o establish_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o to_o the_o end_n that_o it_o may_v more_o clear_o appear_v whereof_o we_o dispute_v in_o this_o place_n it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o see_v that_o our_o adversary_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o church_n aââoardeth_v some_o testimony_n to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o affime_v that_o this_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n be_v only_o a_o bare_a testimony_n and_o not_o a_o testimony_n of_o authority_n 2._o for_o there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o testimony_n the_o one_o be_v call_v a_o testimony_n of_o authority_n because_o upon_o it_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n testify_v depend_v it_o be_v call_v also_o a_o necessary_a testimony_n because_o without_o it_o the_o thing_n in_o question_n be_v not_o sufficient_o testify_v the_o other_o be_v call_v a_o bare_a testimony_n and_o not_o necessary_a that_o be_v to_o say_v when_o such_o a_o testimony_n be_v not_o so_o necessary_a because_o the_o matter_n be_v otherwise_o 7._o joan._n 1._o v._n 7._o sufficient_o testify_v such_o a_o testimony_n be_v that_o which_o s._n sohn_n baptist_n gâue_n of_o christ_n for_o christ_n have_v sufficient_a testimony_n beside_o 3._o of_o the_o former_a testimony_n of_o authority_n christ_n say_v but_o i_o do_v not_o receyve_v my_o ibid._n joan._n 5._o v._n 34._o &_o 36._o ibid._n testimony_n from_o man_n to_o wit_n the_o testimony_n of_o authority_n &_o necessary_a for_o of_o the_o bare_a testimony_n he_o have_v speak_v a_o little_a before_o you_o send_v unto_o john_n and_o he_o have_v give_v testimony_n to_o truth_n but_o this_o be_v a_o bare_a testimony_n wherefore_o christ_n a_o little_a after_o say_v i_o have_v a_o great_a testimony_n than_o john_n for_o the_o work_n which_o the_o father_n have_v give_v i_o to_o profit_v they_o the_o very_a work_n which_o i_o do_v give_v testimony_n of_o i_o that_o the_o father_n have_v send_v i_o and_o the_o father_n that_o send_v i_o himself_o have_v give_v testimony_n of_o i_o all_o which_o say_v christ_n of_o the_o testimony_n of_o authority_n our_o adversary_n therefore_o say_v that_o the_o church_n give_v only_o a_o bare_a testimony_n to_o the_o scripture_n as_o s._n john_n give_v to_o christ_n but_o she_o give_v not_o a_o necessary_a testimony_n or_o that_o of_o authority_n 4._o but_o that_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n be_v altogether_o necessary_a as_o that_o 5._o matt._n 3._o v._o ult._n matt._n 17._o v._n 5._o whereof_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n depend_v be_v very_o manifest_a by_o that_o which_o be_v say_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n and_o by_o that_o also_o which_o we_o allege_v in_o the_o first_o disputation_n where_o we_o show_v that_o there_o be_v now_o no_o firm_a testimony_n whereby_o we_o may_v know_v certain_o which_o book_n be_v canonical_a and_o which_o not_o beside_o the_o testimoniy_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o now_o neither_o be_v the_o miracle_n wrought_v which_o god_n do_v in_o time_n past_a neither_o do_v god_n speak_v immediate_o by_o himself_o as_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o baptism_n and_o transfiguration_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o there_o remain_v only_o the_o three_o ordinary_a manner_n whereby_o god_n speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n therefore_o do_v not_o give_v a_o bare_a testimony_n only_o to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o the_o testimony_n of_o authority_n to_o wit_n that_o whereof_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n depend_v as_o concern_v we_o and_o our_o knowledge_n 5._o moreover_o if_o the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n paul_n stand_v in_o need_n of_o the_o church_n approbation_n as_o we_o have_v already_o prove_v out_o of_o controu_n supr_fw-la c._n 3._o §._o 13._o huius_fw-la controu_n the_o scripture_n much_o more_o s._n luke_n gospel_n who_o be_v only_a s._n paul_n choler_n stand_v in_o need_n thereof_o as_o tertullian_n witness_v especial_o because_o s._n luke_n receive_v not_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o write_v by_o revelation_n from_o god_n 2._o tertu_fw-fr l._n 4._o contra_fw-la marââ_n 2._o luc._n â_o v._o 2._o as_o s._n paul_n do_v but_o by_o tradition_n from_o other_o as_o he_o himself_o write_v and_o the_o same_o also_o may_v be_v say_v of_o s._n mark_v who_o gospel_n as_o s._n hierome_n write_v the_o apostle_n s_o peter_n approve_v and_o by_o his_o authority_n he_o command_v it_o shall_v be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n 6._o but_o neither_o be_v it_o true_a that_o some_o say_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o approve_v the_o canonical_a book_n be_v only_o resident_a in_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o the_o ensue_a church_n have_v it_o not_o for_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o approve_v all_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o if_o they_o have_v do_v so_o there_o have_v remain_v no_o doubt_n of_o many_o of_o they_o for_o many_o age_n after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o apostle_n even_o among_o catholic_a good_a man_n as_o we_o 1_o supra_fw-la ca._n 5._o contr._n 1_o have_v note_v before_o but_o many_o year_n after_o the_o apostle_n time_n by_o the_o general_a counsel_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o church_n some_o book_n be_v approve_v whereof_o there_o be_v before_o some_o doubt_n 7._o yea_o more_o than_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n there_o be_v many_o catholic_n who_o do_v not_o receyve_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o 16._o toletan_n council_n c._n 16._o apocalyps_n as_o appear_v out_o of_o the_o four_o toletane_v council_n 8._o and_o that_o which_o be_v more_o before_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n there_o be_v many_o catholic_n who_o thought_n that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o to_o doubt_v of_o all_o the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o which_o in_o time_n past_o s._n hierome_n seem_v to_o judge_v as_o doubtful_a as_o be_v the_o epistle_n of_o s._n james_n the_o second_o of_o s._n peter_n the_o second_o and_o three_o of_o s._n john_n the_o epistle_n of_o s._n jude_n the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n and_o the_o apocalyps_n and_o if_o it_o have_v not_o be_v for_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n or_o some_o other_o new_a decree_n of_o the_o church_n none_o will_v as_o yet_o condemn_v they_o as_o heretic_n who_o call_v those_o book_n in_o question_n 9_o by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v it_o appear_v manifest_o that_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n receive_v their_o strength_n and_o authority_n not_o from_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o rather_o from_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o church_n succeed_v yea_o even_o of_o this_o present_a church_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 10_o last_o albeit_o the_o present_a church_n shall_v not_o have_v the_o authority_n of_o approve_v scripture_n as_o these_o man_n say_v yet_o notwithstanding_o for_o three_o other_o reason_n the_o authority_n &_o testimony_n of_o this_o present_a church_n be_v necessary_a first_o because_o we_o know_v not_o certain_o what_o book_n the_o primitive_a church_n have_v either_o write_v or_o not_o write_v approve_a or_o reject_v but_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o present_a church_n second_o neither_o do_v we_o know_v whether_o those_o book_n come_v uncorrupted_a unto_o we_o or_o no_o but_o by_o the_o same_o testimony_n three_o because_o we_o can_v otherwise_o know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o those_o book_n chap._n viii_o the_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v confute_v the_o first_o argument_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v the_o church_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o word_n also_o of_o god_n ât_z be_v engender_v nourish_v and_o govern_v and_o it_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o to_o the_o word_n of_o her_o spouse_n i_o answer_v our_o adversary_n do_v in_o a_o manner_n confound_v the_o write_v word_n of_o god_n
write_a point_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o noâ_n other_o judge_n but_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v end_v or_o define_v all_o these_o controversye_n 29._o but_o in_o this_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v two_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v the_o one_o that_o the_o church_n do_v not_o judge_v of_o any_o part_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n out_o of_o her_o own_o proper_a sense_n and_o judgement_n or_o at_o she_o own_o pleasure_n without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o her_o adversary_n and_o namely_o caluin_n do_v wrongful_o slander_v she_o but_o by_o one_o part_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v better_o know_v she_o judge_v of_o that_o which_o be_v less_o know_v and_o manifest_v unto_o we_o as_o for_o example_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n deliver_v by_o tradition_n she_o judge_v of_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o true_a sense_n thereof_o 30._o the_o other_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v be_v that_o when_o the_o church_n do_v judge_v of_o these_o thing_n they_o be_v not_o man_n only_o 28._o act._n 15._o v._n 28._o which_o judge_n as_o our_o adversary_n pretend_v but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n also_o himself_o who_o judge_v and_o speak_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o church_n it_o seem_v good_a say_v the_o apostle_n to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o us._n for_o even_o as_o the_o action_n of_o a_o man_n body_n be_v not_o so_o proper_o the_o action_n of_o the_o body_n as_o of_o the_o soul_n which_o quicken_v and_o move_v the_o body_n so_o the_o action_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o be_v attribute_v unto_o man_n who_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n as_o unto_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o soul_n which_o give_v life_n and_o motion_n to_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n they_o therefore_o who_o deny_v this_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o only_o injurious_a to_o the_o church_n but_o also_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n hitherto_o of_o the_o property_n office_n and_o power_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n it_o fine_a calu._n in_o antid_v contra_fw-la 4._o sess_v council_n trid._n in_o fine_a remain_v now_o we_o show_v such_o a_o church_n as_o the_o scripture_n declare_v and_o describe_v unto_o we_o the_o which_o caluin_n as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o earnest_o desire_v of_o us._n finis_fw-la of_o the_o mark_v of_o the_o true_a church_n the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o second_o controversy_n chap._n i._o of_o the_o false_a and_o true_a sign_n or_o mark_v of_o the_o church_n in_o general_n have_v in_o the_o precedent_a controversye_n declare_v that_o christ_n and_o all_o that_o good_a be_v can_v only_o be_v find_v in_o the_o true_a church_n and_o that_o out_o of_o it_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o everlasting_a damnation_n now_o it_o remain_v that_o we_o inquire_v which_o be_v that_o true_a church_n where_o it_o may_v be_v find_v and_o how_o it_o be_v describe_v and_o set_v forth_o in_o holy_a scripture_n for_o all_o the_o sect_n of_o heresy_n go_v about_o to_o challenge_v she_o unto_o themselves_o yea_o even_o those_o who_o otherwise_o have_v a_o very_a bad_a conceit_n and_o opinion_n of_o she_o for_o they_o see_v very_o well_o that_o out_o of_o she_o they_o can_v expect_v or_o hope_v for_o no_o salvation_n but_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v not_o err_v in_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a moment_n we_o will_v seek_v out_o the_o true_a mark_n and_o sign_n whereby_o the_o true_a church_n may_v be_v certain_o know_v and_o discern_v from_o every_o false_a and_o counterfeit_a church_n 2._o our_o adversary_n do_v common_o 4._o calu._n l._n 4._o inst_z c._n 7._o sect_n 9_o &_o 10._o bez._n in_o sva_fw-la confess_v c._n 5._o art_n 7._o centuriatores_fw-la 1._o centur._n l._n 1._o c._n 4._o l._n 2._o cap._n 4._o set_v down_o two_o sign_n or_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n to_o wit_n the_o sincere_a preach_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o lawful_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n bezâ_n add_v a_o three_o sign_n to_o wit_n the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n practise_v agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o lutheran_n annex_v unto_o these_o a_o four_o sign_n to_o wit_n a_o obedience_n towards_o minister_n of_o this_o four_o sign_n we_o will_v speak_v a_o little_a after_o for_o it_o be_v reduce_v to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o three_o sign_n set_v down_o by_o the_o caluinist_n be_v altogether_o foolish_a and_o frivolous_a the_o which_o we_o prove_v thus_o 3._o first_o by_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o a_o sign_n for_o every_o sign_n of_o it_o own_o nature_n 11._o s._n aug._n tom._n â_o l._n 2._o the_o doct_n christ_n cap_n 1._o &_o 3_o calu._n l._n 4._o inst_z cap._n 17._o sect_n 11._o be_v a_o sensilbe_n thing_n as_o all_o teach_v follow_v therein_o s._n augustine_n and_o our_o adversary_n confess_v this_o to_o be_v true_a when_o they_o treat_v of_o the_o sacrament_n yea_o caluin_n write_v that_o this_o be_v always_o as_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o church_n and_o so_o do_v all_o teach_v now_o who_o be_v of_o understanding_n true_o none_o will_v say_v that_o which_o be_v only_o believe_v in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o sign_n but_o that_o which_o be_v see_v but_o these_o sign_n of_o the_o church_n prescribe_v by_o our_o adversary_n can_v neither_o be_v see_v nor_o perceyve_v by_o any_o sense_n yea_o not_o even_o by_o our_o understanding_n unless_o it_o be_v illuminate_v by_o faith_n for_o by_o faith_n only_o be_v they_o preceyve_v because_o none_o can_v know_v which_o be_v the_o sincere_a preach_n lawful_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n prescribe_v by_o christ_n but_o by_o faith_n wherefore_o they_o who_o say_v that_o these_o be_v the_o sign_n and_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o indeed_o know_v what_o they_o say_v even_o as_o if_o one_o shall_v affirm_v that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n the_o ablution_n and_o the_o word_n be_v not_o sign_n but_o the_o effect_n of_o baptism_n which_o be_v not_o see_v which_o every_o man_n see_v how_o absurd_a it_o be_v 4._o the_o second_o reason_n every_o sign_n of_o any_o thing_n must_v be_v more_o manifest_a and_o better_o know_v than_o the_o thing_n itself_o who_o sign_n it_o be_v because_o it_o be_v put_v for_o that_o end_n that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o sign_n or_o token_n whereby_o that_o other_o thing_n may_v be_v know_v but_o these_o sign_n of_o the_o church_n allege_v by_o our_o adversary_n be_v more_o obscure_a and_o uncertain_a than_o the_o church_n itself_o for_o the_o church_n be_v at_o the_o least_o oftentimes_o visible_a as_o they_o themselves_o confess_v but_o these_o their_o sign_n be_v never_o visible_a but_o always_o invisible_a for_o they_o can_v only_o be_v know_v by_o faith_n as_o we_o have_v already_o declare_v but_o that_o which_o be_v by_o faith_n declare_v be_v necessary_o obscure_a because_o faith_n as_o witness_v the_o 1._o heb._n 11._o v._o 1._o apostle_n be_v the_o argument_n of_o thing_n not_o appear_v &_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o all_o sect_n do_v brag_v and_o boast_v that_o they_o have_v these_o sign_n because_o indeed_o they_o can_v be_v clear_o see_v of_o any_o 5._o the_o three_o reason_n our_o adversary_n do_v allege_v in_o vain_a these_o sign_n for_o therefore_o do_v we_o inquire_v for_o sign_n and_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o which_o be_v ignorant_a of_o she_o may_v thereby_o come_v to_o know_v she_o for_o they_o who_o already_o know_v any_o thing_n do_v not_o need_v any_o sign_n as_o for_o example_n he_o who_o already_o know_v very_o well_o this_o city_n need_v no_o mark_n or_o sign_n thereof_o whereby_o he_o may_v know_v it_o but_o he_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o sign_n who_o never_o see_v this_o city_n so_o in_o like_a manner_n they_o who_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o know_v she_o not_o do_v most_o of_o all_o need_n some_o sign_n and_o mark_n whereby_o to_o know_v she_o but_o these_o which_o our_o adversary_n assign_v can_v be_v know_v by_o none_o but_o by_o those_o who_o be_v already_o within_o the_o church_n and_o know_v she_o very_o well_o have_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o belief_n thereof_o but_o they_o can_v be_v understand_v by_o those_o who_o know_v not_o the_o true_a church_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v seek_v and_o find_v she_o because_o they_o be_v only_o perceyve_v and_o know_v by_o faith_n they_o be_v therefore_o allege_v in_o vain_a by_o our_o adversary_n 6._o but_o neither_o can_v these_o sign_n be_v know_v of_o all_o those_o who_o be_v in_o the_o church_n but_o only_o of_o the_o more_o learned_a in_o the_o church_n for_o every_o one_o of_o the_o common_a
people_n can_v discern_v which_o be_v the_o sincere_a preach_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o the_o lawful_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n prescribe_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o who_o know_v all_o these_o thing_n well_o shall_v also_o understand_v almost_o all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n moreover_o there_o be_v as_o yet_o a_o very_a great_a controversy_n among_o âur_n adversary_n themselves_o concern_v these_o three_o sign_n while_o that_o some_o of_o they_o do_v contend_v &_o strive_v that_o this_o be_v the_o sincere_a preach_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n other_o that_o some_o do_v say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o lawful_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n other_o that_o some_o do_v say_v this_o be_v the_o discipline_n prescribe_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n other_o assign_v another_o quite_o different_a from_o this_o 7._o but_o our_o adversary_n do_v in_o very_a truth_n confound_v the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o sign_n thereof_o for_o to_o preach_v sincere_o to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n lawful_o and_o to_o appoint_v the_o discipline_n of_o the_o seq_fw-la supr_fw-la c._n 1._o buius_fw-la con_fw-mi §._o 9_o &_o seq_fw-la church_n right_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n as_o we_o have_v declare_v before_o and_o not_o the_o sign_n thereof_o these_o sign_n therefore_o be_v reject_v which_o our_o adversary_n do_v assign_v it_o remain_v that_o we_o inquire_v out_o the_o true_a sign_n of_o the_o church_n 8._o but_o this_o be_v first_o to_o be_v presuppose_v as_o it_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o that_o we_o be_v to_o speak_v of_o this_o matter_n that_o even_o natural_a reason_n itself_o do_v clear_o demonstrate_v that_o there_o be_v some_o true_a church_n of_o god_n here_o upon_o earth_n for_o this_o be_v one_o of_o those_o first_o principle_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v as_o evident_o prove_v by_o natural_a reason_n as_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n wherefore_o the_o apostle_n place_v these_o two_o among_o the_o first_o ground_n of_o our_o faith_n he_o that_o come_v to_o god_n say_v he_o must_v believe_v that_o he_o be_v &_o be_v a_o rewarder_n to_o they_o that_o seek_v â_o hebr._n v._o â_o he_o but_o they_o which_o so_o seek_v after_o god_n that_o they_o may_v be_v reward_v by_o he_o be_v without_o all_o doubt_n in_o the_o true_a church_n 4._o moreover_o natural_a reason_n itself_o do_v evident_o teach_v we_o that_o it_o be_v a_o absurd_a thing_n to_o think_v that_o there_o be_v no_o way_n leave_v by_o god_n for_o man_n to_o obtain_v their_o eternal_a salvation_n see_v that_o this_o be_v quite_o opposite_a to_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n &_o to_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n but_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n beside_o the_o church_n as_o we_o have_v declare_v before_o controversiae_fw-la cap._n 2d_o huius_fw-la controversiae_fw-la but_o because_o there_o be_v so_o many_o &_o so_o diverse_a opinion_n of_o man_n concern_v this_o so_o necessary_a a_o way_n to_o salvation_n there_o be_v also_o certain_a sign_n &_o mark_n thereof_o set_v down_o that_o we_o may_v the_o better_o understand_v which_o be_v indeed_o the_o certain_a and_o most_o true_a way_n 10._o out_o of_o these_o which_o we_o have_v now_o fine_a supra_fw-la c._n 14._o huius_fw-la controu_fw-fr §._o 5._o in_o fine_a say_v follow_v first_o that_o that_o which_o we_o have_v insinuate_v before_o be_v most_o true_a to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v more_o certain_a &_o evident_a that_o there_o be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n see_v that_o it_o be_v manifest_a by_o natural_a reason_n that_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v some_o church_n of_o god_n here_o upon_o earth_n the_o which_o be_v not_o so_o evident_a of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 11._o the_o second_o thing_n which_o ensue_v be_v that_o to_o these_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a church_n these_o two_o conditious_a be_v altogether_o necessary_a the_o first_o be_v that_o they_o must_v be_v such_o as_o that_o they_o may_v not_o only_o be_v perceive_v by_o faith_n and_o our_o understanding_n but_o even_o by_o sense_n itself_o for_o other_o wise_a they_o can_v be_v true_a sign_n as_o we_o have_v already_o prove_v the_o other_o be_v that_o they_o be_v know_v and_o manifest_a to_o all_o man_n even_o unto_o infidel_n see_v that_o otherwise_o 8._o isa_n 35._o five_o 8._o they_o can_v help_v they_o or_o convince_v and_o bring_v they_o to_o the_o true_a church_n for_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o prophet_n testify_v be_v a_o direct_a way_n so_o that_o fool_n that_o be_v to_o 8._o bellarm_n per_fw-la totum_fw-la l._n 4._o de_fw-fr eccles_n militante_fw-la bozius_n de_fw-fr signis_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la coccius_n tom._n 1._o per_fw-la totum_fw-la l._n 8._o say_v infidel_n can_v err_v by_o it_o 12._o of_o these_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a church_n bellarmine_n coccius_n and_o thomas_n bozius_n eugubinus_n discourse_n at_o large_a who_o have_v gather_v twenty_o four_o sign_n in_o all_o of_o the_o true_a church_n all_o which_o he_o manifest_o prove_v to_o agree_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n out_o of_o these_o author_n more_o sign_n may_v be_v require_v 13._o but_o we_o regard_v our_o intend_a brevity_n will_v only_o allege_v four_o which_o be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o nicene_n and_o constantinopolitan_a creed_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o this_o true_a church_n be_v one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a for_o these_o four_o sign_n be_v so_o certain_a that_o they_o can_v be_v reject_v even_o by_o our_o adversary_n first_o because_o they_o be_v express_o set_v down_o in_o holy_a scripture_n as_o we_o will_v show_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n moreover_o our_o adversary_n do_v profess_v that_o they_o admit_v and_o receive_v three_o creed_n to_o wit_n the_o apostle_n creed_n the_o nicene_n and_o fine_a rupell_v confess_v artic._n 5._o in_o fine_a that_o of_o s._n athanasius_n but_o in_o that_o which_o we_o call_v the_o nicen_n creed_n these_o four_o sign_n of_o the_o church_n be_v express_o set_v down_o whereof_o we_o will_v now_o speak_v more_o particular_o chap._n ii_o that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v one_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a s._n augustine_n very_o well_o admonish_v we_o that_o when_o we_o dispute_v against_o 3._o s._n aug._n tom._n 7._o de_fw-la unit_fw-la eccles_n cap._n 3._o heretic_n which_o do_v admit_v the_o holy_a scripture_n we_o shall_v prove_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n &_o the_o sign_n thereof_o out_o of_o the_o say_v holy_a writ_n for_o as_o the_o same_o holy_a father_n note_v in_o another_o place_n the_o prophet_n have_v speak_v more_o obscure_o of_o christ_n i_o s._n aug._n tom._n 8._o con_v 2._o in_o psal_n 30._o super_fw-la ea_fw-la verba_fw-la v._n 12._o qui_fw-la videbant_fw-la i_o foras_fw-la fugerunt_fw-la à _fw-la i_o than_o they_o do_v of_o the_o church_n because_o by_o their_o prophetical_a spirit_n they_o do_v see_v that_o there_o will_v arise_v great_a strife_n &_o debate_n about_o the_o church_n they_o of_o christ_n himself_o we_o will_v therefore_o here_o prove_v these_o four_o sign_n of_o the_o church_n first_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o second_o by_o natural_a reason_n see_v that_o these_o sign_n must_v be_v such_o as_o may_v convince_v those_o which_o do_v not_o admit_v the_o scripture_n as_o we_o have_v declare_v in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n 2._o the_o first_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v unity_n for_o there_o be_v a_o threefold_a unity_n necessary_o preach_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n the_o first_o be_v of_o all_o the_o member_n with_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n the_o which_o be_v effect_v by_o faith_n wherefore_o it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o there_o must_v be_v but_o one_o faith_n of_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n one_o lord_n and_o god_n say_v the_o apostle_n and_o one_o faith_n and_o again_o until_o we_o all_o meet_v in_o the_o unity_n 13._o ephes_n 4._o v._n 5._o eph._n 4._o v._n 13._o of_o faith_n 3._o the_o second_o unity_n be_v of_o all_o the_o member_n among_o themselves_o for_o as_o he_o who_o dissolve_v the_o first_o unity_n be_v a_o heretic_n so_o he_o which_o violate_v this_o be_v a_o schismatic_n wherefore_o christ_n say_v in_o this_o all_o man_n shall_v know_v that_o you_o be_v my_o disciple_n if_o you_o have_v love_v one_o to_o another_o and_o the_o apostle_n that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o schism_n in_o the_o body_n but_o the_o member_n 33._o joan._n 13._o v._n 15._o 1._o cor._n 1._o v._n 25._o 1._o cor._n 24._o v._n 33._o together_o may_v be_v careful_a one_o for_o another_o final_o god_n be_v not_o the_o god_n of_o dissension_n but_o of_o peace_n as_o also_o in_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o saint_n i_o teach_v say_v the_o same_o apostle_n 4._o
this_o office_n as_o we_o have_v prove_v before_o 17._o this_o continual_a sucession_n be_v also_o a_o visible_a sign_n because_o in_o some_o part_n or_o person_n thereof_o it_o may_v be_v see_v at_o all_o time_n as_o successive_a and_o transitory_a thing_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v see_v for_o in_o this_o manner_n only_o can_v a_o river_n for_o example_n sake_n &_o time_n itself_o be_v see_v 18._o final_o this_o sign_n be_v also_o certain_a and_o evident_o well_o know_v among_o the_o infidel_n for_o unless_o this_o succession_n be_v continual_a the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n shall_v altogether_o perish_v and_o decay_v all_o honour_n &_o worship_n of_o the_o true_a god_n will_v be_v overthrow_v and_o there_o will_v remain_v no_o way_n for_o man_n to_o their_o eternal_a salvation_n but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n where_o there_o be_v a_o continual_a succession_n and_o a_o never-interrupted_n continuance_n of_o the_o same_o religion_n there_o appear_v sufficient_o a_o great_a providence_n and_o a_o singular_a assistance_n of_o almighty_a god_n towards_o man_n 19_o furthermore_o that_o which_o we_o have_v hitherto_o say_v of_o these_o four_o sign_n may_v suffice_v but_o that_o the_o pertinacy_n and_o inconstancy_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v so_o very_o admirable_a and_o great_a for_o albeit_o in_o one_o place_n they_o acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o receive_v fine_a rââell_n confess_v art_n 5_o in_o fine_a the_o nicen_n creed_n wherein_o these_o four_o sign_n of_o the_o church_n be_v express_o contain_v yet_o notwithstanding_o else_o where_o when_o they_o see_v themselves_o manifest_o convince_v 6._o extatbis_fw-la lib._n in_o 3._o volume_n tract_n theol._n bezae_n tract_n 6._o by_o these_o sign_n of_o perfidious_a deal_n they_o do_v utter_o reject_v they_o for_o beza_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o true_a &_o visible_a sign_n of_o true_a catholic_a church_n wherein_o notwithstanding_o he_o go_v about_o nothing_o else_o but_o to_o establish_v those_o his_o invisible_a mark_n of_o the_o church_n albeit_o he_o affirm_v that_o his_o follower_n do_v acknowledge_v all_o those_o creed_n which_o have_v be_v always_o approve_v by_o the_o common_a 1582._o habentur_fw-la hâc_fw-la p._n 138._o sub_fw-la fin_n edit_fw-la geneu_fw-fr anno._n 1582._o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o wit_n that_o of_o the_o apostle_n the_o nicene_n that_o of_o s._n athanasius_n the_o constantinopolitan_a and_o the_o chalcedon_n yet_o for_o all_o this_o he_o impugn_v these_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n of_o which_o he_o know_v that_o he_o and_o he_o be_v altogether_o destitute_a and_o especial_o the_o four_o which_o be_v deduce_v from_o the_o apostolical_a succession_n 20._o he_o therefore_o object_v these_o supra_fw-la ita_fw-la beza_n p._n 137._o in_o princip_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la sign_n that_o they_o be_v not_o proper_a unto_o the_o church_n quarto_fw-la modo_fw-la as_o prophyrius_n and_o other_o logician_n define_v proprium_fw-la quarto_fw-la modo_fw-la because_o they_o do_v not_o agree_v to_o the_o true_a church_n only_o for_o unity_n and_o succession_n may_v also_o be_v find_v among_o wicked_a man_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o jew_n and_o mahomet_n but_o these_o be_v easy_o answer_v for_o these_o sign_n be_v not_o allege_v as_o property_n quarto_fw-la modo_fw-la as_o beza_n think_v but_o rather_o as_o it_o be_v accident_n by_o the_o collection_n whereof_o individua_fw-la be_v distinguish_v one_o from_o another_o inâââe_n porph._n c._n de_fw-fr specie_fw-la inâââe_n as_o the_o same_o porphyrius_n teach_v for_o those_o accident_n whereby_o individua_fw-la be_v distinguish_v may_v be_v find_v separate_v one_o from_o another_o in_o diverse_a substance_n but_o not_o all_o gather_v together_o in_o one_o 21._o wherefore_o see_v that_o the_o church_n be_v one_o singular_a and_o indivisible_a we_o must_v not_o only_o allege_v the_o property_n thereof_o but_o also_o other_o sign_n as_o it_o be_v quality_n and_o accident_n whereby_o this_o true_a church_n may_v be_v distinguish_v from_o all_o other_o for_o albeit_o some_o one_o or_o other_o of_o these_o sign_n may_v be_v find_v in_o some_o other_o thing_n yet_o they_o can_v all_o four_o together_o be_v find_v any_o where_o but_o in_o the_o true_a church_n 22._o therefore_o any_o one_o of_o these_o sign_n consider_v by_o itself_o separate_v the_o true_a church_n from_o the_o false_a as_o for_o example_n the_o unity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o continual_a succession_n do_v separate_v and_o distinguish_v she_o from_o any_o heretical_a church_n but_o all_o these_o sign_n or_o mark_n join_v and_o unite_v together_o do_v distinguish_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n altogether_o from_o every_o false_a church_n and_o this_o be_v sufficient_a that_o they_o may_v be_v call_v most_o true_a sign_n in_o their_o kind_n controver_n supr_fw-la c._n 1._o huius_fw-la controver_n 23._o we_o sure_o have_v already_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o precedent_a controversy_n speak_v of_o the_o true_a property_n of_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n when_o we_o declare_v that_o she_o be_v the_o spouse_n body_n kingdom_n inheritance_n and_o city_n of_o christ_n for_o these_o be_v propria_fw-la quarto_fw-la modo_fw-la and_o in_o this_o manner_n they_o all_o always_o and_o only_o agree_v to_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n 24._o moreover_o see_v that_o these_o property_n be_v so_o invisible_a as_o that_o they_o can_v be_v perceyve_v by_o any_o sense_n but_o only_o by_o faith_n they_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o convince_v infidel_n heretic_n and_o other_o which_o want_v true_a faith_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n other_o visible_a sign_n be_v also_o necessary_a which_o may_v be_v perceyve_v by_o all_o as_o also_o convince_v they_o of_o which_o sort_n be_v these_o four_o sign_n which_o we_o have_v now_o allege_v 25._o that_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o may_v omit_v that_o the_o late_a and_o new_a upstart_n church_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v so_o much_o worse_a than_o the_o church_n of_o jew_n and_o infidel_n because_o sometime_o in_o these_o some_o one_o or_o other_o of_o the_o aforesaid_a sign_n may_v controu_n infr._n cap._n 22._o huius_fw-la controu_n be_v find_v but_o in_o our_o adversary_n church_n as_o we_o will_v show_v hereafter_o not_o one_o of_o they_o can_v be_v find_v chap._n iii_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n only_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o property_n of_o the_o true_a church_n hitherto_o we_o have_v describe_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o by_o the_o property_n office_n and_o peculiar_a sign_n thereof_o now_o it_o remain_v that_o we_o by_o the_o same_o inquire_v and_o examine_v in_o what_o part_n or_o place_n of_o the_o world_n this_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v find_v the_o which_o will_v easy_o be_v do_v if_o we_o declare_v that_o all_o these_o propertye_n office_n and_o sign_n must_v needs_o agree_v to_o some_o one_o we_o therefore_o do_v affirm_v that_o all_o the_o office_n property_n and_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a church_n do_v only_o agree_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n 2._o it_o be_v here_o notwithstanding_o to_o be_v consider_v lest_o some_o perchance_o by_o the_o ambiguity_n or_o equivocation_n of_o the_o word_n be_v deceive_v that_o we_o do_v not_o understand_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o which_o be_v only_o at_o rome_n as_o our_o adversary_n go_v about_o to_o persuade_v the_o ignorant_a but_o plain_o every_o church_n which_o agree_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n with_o the_o roman_a and_o which_o obey_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n whersoever_o that_o church_n be_v whether_o at_o rome_n or_o else_o where_o yea_o even_o the_o further_a part_n of_o the_o indies_n moreover_o that_o this_o roman_a church_n thus_o understand_v be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o consequent_o that_o out_o of_o she_o we_o can_v hope_v for_o eternal_a salvation_n see_v that_o out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o we_o controver_n cap._n 1._o buius_fw-la controver_n have_v sufficient_o declare_v before_o we_o can_v be_v save_v we_o will_v evident_o demonstrate_v by_o all_o the_o property_n office_n and_o sign_n before_o allege_v of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o first_o we_o will_v speak_v of_o the_o property_n to_o wit_n of_o those_o which_o agree_v unto_o she_o quarto_fw-la modo_fw-la for_o all_o these_o do_v very_o well_o agree_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o to_o no_o other_o the_o which_o we_o declare_v in_o this_o manner_n 3._o first_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o espouse_v of_o christ_n for_o that_o she_o be_v betroth_v and_o espouse_v unto_o christ_n by_o truen_a faith_n those_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v plain_o testify_v your_o faith_n say_v the_o apostle_n 8._o rom._n 1._o v._n 8._o write_v to_o the_o roman_n be_v renown_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o a_o little_a after_o s._n paul_n profess_v himself_o to_o agree_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n
with_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o be_v to_o profess_v the_o roman_a faith_n and_o not_o that_o of_o wittemberge_n as_o luther_n or_o that_o of_o geneva_n as_o caluin_n do_v wherefore_o with_o good_a right_n we_o profess_v ourselves_o not_o only_o to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o catholic_a but_o also_o of_o the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n and_o faith_n the_o which_o s._n paul_n also_o manifest_o profess_v himself_o to_o be_v 4._o but_o our_o adversary_n object_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n have_v the_o true_a faith_n but_o afterward_o she_o forsake_v and_o lose_v it_o so_o in_o time_n past_o those_o heretic_n which_o be_v call_v donatist_n when_o they_o be_v urge_v by_o the_o argument_n of_o catholic_n be_v wont_a to_o say_v that_o indeed_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v famous_a over_o all_o the_o world_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n but_o in_o their_o time_n she_o perish_v in_o all_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o remain_v only_o among_o the_o donatist_n in_o 12._o s._n aug._n tom._n 7._o de_fw-la unit_fw-la eccles_n cap._n 12._o africa_a who_o s._n augustine_n refute_v very_o well_o and_o we_o imitate_v he_o herein_o will_v use_v this_o kind_n of_o argument_n that_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v once_o the_o true_a and_o sincere_a faith_n the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v express_o testify_v but_o that_o the_o same_o church_n afterward_o forsake_v or_o lose_v her_o former_a faith_n be_v not_o where_o extant_a in_o holy_a writ_n therefore_o we_o must_v not_o believe_v that_o which_o be_v so_o express_o against_o the_o scripture_n 5._o and_o this_o argument_n indeed_o urge_v much_o more_o our_o adversary_n then_o the_o donatist_n see_v that_o they_o teach_v that_o we_o must_v believe_v nothing_o which_o be_v not_o express_o in_o scripture_n but_o this_o be_v no_o where_o to_o be_v find_v express_o therein_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n forsake_v or_o lose_v her_o faith_n which_o she_o have_v receyve_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o true_o there_o can_v be_v no_o great_a sign_n of_o the_o want_n of_o learning_n and_o judgement_n then_o to_o think_v that_o that_o church_n forsake_v and_o lose_v her_o faith_n who_o faith_n even_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n do_v so_o great_o commend_v unto_o we_o unless_o this_o her_o forsake_v and_o lose_v of_o her_o former_a true_a faith_n can_v be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o same_o word_n of_o god_n 6._o our_o adversary_n indeed_o say_v that_o they_o will_v prove_v it_o in_o some_o particular_a point_n of_o faith_n but_o they_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o perform_v their_o promise_n as_o in_o every_o particular_a controversy_n will_v appear_v 7._o moreover_o god_n promise_v to_o this_o espouse_v of_o christ_n by_o the_o prophet_n isay_n the_o which_o he_o also_o confirm_v with_o a_o oath_n that_o she_o shall_v be_v invest_v and_o adorn_v with_o diverse_a nation_n and_o people_n for_o so_o speak_v god_n to_o the_o church_n lift_v up_o thy_o eye_n and_o look_v round_o about_o thou_o and_o see_v all_o these_o 18._o isa_n 40._o v._n 18._o be_v gather_v together_o they_o be_v come_v unto_o thou_o as_o i_o live_v say_v our_o lord_n thou_o shall_v be_v invest_v with_o all_o these_o as_o with_o a_o ornament_n &_o thou_o shall_v compass_v they_o about_o unto_o thy_o self_n as_o a_o spouse_n so_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v always_o have_v and_o still_o have_v many_o nation_n and_o people_n subject_a unto_o she_o wherewith_o she_o be_v invest_v and_o adorn_v the_o which_o even_o our_o adversary_n can_v deny_v 8._o second_o the_o church_n be_v the_o visible_a and_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n there_o have_v always_o be_v and_o now_o also_o there_o be_v the_o visible_a body_n of_o christ_n consist_v of_o diverse_a member_n and_o state_n as_o also_o of_o doctor_n and_o pastor_n whereof_o s._n paul_n speak_v write_v to_o the_o ephesian_n and_o corinthian_n 9_o three_o the_o church_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n but_o in_o the_o roman_a 12._o ephes_n 4._o v._n 11._o &_o 12._o 1._o cor._n 12._o v._n 12._o church_n there_o have_v always_o &_o now_o also_o be_v the_o visible_a kingdom_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o such_o a_o one_o as_o the_o prophet_n isay_n describe_v when_o he_o say_v that_o king_n and_o queen_n shall_v be_v thy_o nurse_n for_o there_o have_v 23._o isa_n 46._o five_o 23._o ever_o be_v since_o the_o conversion_n of_o nation_n many_o king_n and_o monarch_n who_o have_v agree_v in_o unity_n of_o faith_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o have_v acknowledge_v always_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o chief_a head_n and_o pastor_n of_o all_o the_o whole_a 8._o coccius_n tom_n 1._o l._n art_n 7._o 8._o militant_a church_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o that_o which_o coccius_n have_v set_v down_o in_o his_o catalogue_n to_o this_o purpose_n 10._o furthermore_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n thus_o describe_v the_o future_a kingdom_n of_o 22._o jerem._n 33._o v._o 20._o 21._o &_o 22._o christ_n this_o say_v our_o lord_n if_o my_o covenant_n can_v be_v break_v and_o make_v void_a with_o the_o day_n and_o my_o covenant_n with_o the_o night_n so_o that_o there_o be_v neither_o day_n nor_o night_n in_o their_o due_a time_n then_o my_o covenant_n can_v be_v break_v with_o my_o servant_n david_n that_o there_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o son_n of_o his_o reign_v in_o his_o throne_n and_o the_o levit_n and_o priest_n my_o minister_n as_o the_o âlarres_n of_o the_o heaven_n can_v be_v number_v nor_o the_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n measure_v so_o will_v i_o multiply_v the_o seed_n of_o my_o servant_n david_n and_o the_o levit_n my_o minister_n thus_o say_v god_n by_o his_o prophet_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n his_o son_n and_o of_o the_o levit_n and_o priest_n minister_a unto_o our_o lord_n and_o of_o the_o infinite_a number_n of_o they_o which_o be_v manifest_a to_o have_v be_v fullfil_v hitherto_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n 11._o four_o the_o church_n be_v the_o inheritance_n of_o christ_n to_o wit_n that_o which_o according_a 10._o psal_n 2._o v._n 8._o psal_n 1._o v._n 7._o 8._o isa_n 51_o v._n 10._o to_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o prophet_n extend_v herself_o to_o the_o very_a bound_n and_o limit_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n which_o be_v in_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o nation_n the_o which_o all_o the_o corner_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v see_v &_o last_o which_o be_v extend_v from_o the_o east_n to_o the_o west_n 12._o maâ_n ab_fw-la 1._o v._n 12._o but_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n there_o have_v always_o be_v such_o a_o inheritance_n of_o christ_n 12._o hereupon_o be_v those_o famous_a word_n of_o s._n leo_n to_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n these_o be_v they_o who_o have_v exalt_v thou_o to_o this_o glory_n that_o be_v a_o holy_a nation_n a_o choose_a people_n a_o priestly_a &_o pausi_n s._n leo_n serm_n 1._o in_o natal_n apost_n petri_n &_o pausi_n a_o princely_a city_n by_o the_o holy_a seat_n of_o s._n peter_n make_v the_o head_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v have_v a_o more_o large_a command_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o divine_a religion_n than_o ever_o thou_o have_v by_o foreign_a domination_n for_o albeit_o thou_o be_v famous_a renown_v for_o many_o victory_n haste_v extend_v the_o limit_n of_o thy_o empire_n both_o by_o sea_n and_o land_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v less_o which_o thy_o warlike_a labour_n have_v subdue_v then_o that_o which_o the_o religion_n of_o christ_n have_v make_v subject_a unto_o thou_o hitherto_o s._n leo._n 13._o moreover_o s._n prosper_v the_o great_a glory_n of_o aquitania_n and_o dear_o belove_a friend_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o who_o defend_v egregious_o his_o doctrine_n against_o the_o pelagian_n in_o a_o certain_a book_n write_v in_o verse_n against_o the_o same_o pelagian_n speak_v of_o their_o heresy_n write_v thus_o when_o this_o infectious_a pestilence_n arise_v rome_n peter_n seat_n first_o give_v it_o deadly_a blow_n 2._o s._n prosp_n in_o lib._n de_fw-fr ingratis_fw-la cont_n pelag_n c._n 2._o which_o make_v the_o head_n of_o pastoral_a dignity_n whereto_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v obedient_a be_v can_v more_v now_o subject_a by_o religion_n law_n then_o her_o fierce_a army_n erst_o can_v keep_v in_o awe_n thus_o write_v he_o a_o 1200._o year_n ago_o 14._o but_o in_o this_o our_o age_n the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v propagate_v and_o preach_v in_o the_o most_o remote_a country_n of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n yea_o even_o unto_o the_o further_a part_n of_o the_o world_n in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o child_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n come_v oftentimes_o from_o the_o east_n to_o the_o west_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o prophet_n malachy_n to_o wit_n from_o the_o
east_n indies_n to_o the_o west_n and_o they_o 12._o malac._n 1._o v._o 12._o compass_v the_o whole_a globe_n of_o the_o earth_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v preach_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n every_o where_o wherefore_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v preach_v &_o receive_v in_o this_o ouâ_n age_n in_o many_o &_o more_o remote_a place_n of_o the_o world_n they_o ever_o it_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o which_o be_v most_o assure_o testify_v by_o the_o letter_n and_o book_n even_o of_o they_o who_o write_v what_o themselves_o have_v see_v 15._o five_o the_o church_n be_v the_o city_n of_o christ_n place_v upon_o a_o mountain_n which_o can_v be_v hide_v so_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 14._o matt._n 5._o v._n 14._o have_v always_o be_v visible_a ever_o since_o the_o apostle_n time_n neither_o can_v it_o ever_o be_v hide_v by_o these_o it_o appear_v that_o all_o the_o true_a property_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n agree_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 16._o but_o that_o they_o can_v agree_v with_o any_o other_o it_o appear_v sufficient_o by_o that_o our_o adversary_n can_v assign_v no_o church_n which_o can_v have_v these_o property_n wherefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o confess_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n or_o true_o which_o be_v most_o absurd_a that_o christ_n have_v want_v and_o be_v deprive_v of_o his_o spouse_n now_o for_o the_o space_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o more_o as_o also_o to_o have_v want_v his_o body_n city_n kingdom_n and_o inheritance_n chap._n four_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o office_n of_o the_o true_a church_n in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n we_o have_v 5._o supr_fw-la 18._o huius_fw-la controver_n §_o 3._o 4._o &_o 5._o prove_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o property_n of_o the_o same_o now_o it_o remain_v that_o we_o prove_v it_o by_o the_o peculiar_a office_n and_o function_n of_o the_o true_a church_n many_o reason_n may_v by_o deduce_v out_o of_o these_o but_o we_o will_v brief_o touch_v only_o the_o chief_a 2._o the_o first_o reason_n be_v take_v from_o those_o very_a sign_n which_o our_o adversary_n assign_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o true_a and_o sincere_a preach_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o lawful_a administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v indeed_o office_n and_o not_o sign_n of_o the_o church_n as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o but_o whether_o they_o be_v sign_n or_o office_n by_o they_o it_o be_v evident_o prove_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o no_o other_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o for_o the_o space_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n last_o past_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o where_o lawful_o administer_v nor_o the_o word_n of_o god_n sincere_o preach_v but_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o our_o adversary_n can_v name_v any_o church_n wherein_o these_o thing_n have_v be_v do_v therefore_o either_o the_o roman_n be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o else_o christ_n have_v have_v no_o church_n for_o the_o space_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o more_o 1582._o calu._n l._n 4._o inst_z c._n 2._o sect_n 11._o &_o 21._o beza_n de_fw-fr notis_fw-la eccles_n p._n 145._o in_o fine_a geneu_fw-fr edit_fw-la a_o 1582._o 3._o neither_o must_v our_o adversary_n answer_n we_o with_o caluin_n and_o beza_n that_o their_o church_n indeed_o remain_v in_o the_o popedom_n for_o they_o can_v find_v it_o any_o where_o else_o yet_o half_o destroy_v and_o filthy_o corrupt_v and_o deface_v with_o many_o error_n for_o here_o we_o inquire_v after_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o such_o a_o profane_a and_o filthy_a church_n which_o caluin_n describe_v wherein_n christ_n as_o it_o be_v lie_v half_o dead_a and_o bury_v the_o gospel_n overthrow_v &_o citat_fw-la calu._n sect_n 12._o citat_fw-la piety_n banish_v the_o worship_n of_o god_n almost_o quite_o abolish_v for_o such_o a_o church_n be_v not_o indeed_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o a_o den_n of_o devil_n 4._o moreover_o they_o must_v not_o here_o run_v to_o any_o invisible_a church_n altogether_o unknowen_a both_o to_o themselves_o and_o we_o the_o which_o our_o adversary_n seem_v to_o establish_v for_o we_o have_v sufficient_o declare_v before_o cont_n supr_fw-la c._n 4._o huius_fw-la cont_n that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n have_v be_v always_o visible_a wherefore_o it_o be_v necessary_a they_o show_v we_o some_o other_o visible_a beside_o the_o roman_a church_n wherein_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n past_o the_o gospel_n have_v be_v public_o preach_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n they_o preach_v it_o now_o and_o the_o sacrament_n public_o administer_v as_o they_o be_v now_o and_o that_o continual_o also_o without_o interruption_n or_o true_o they_o must_v confess_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n for_o in_o this_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n have_v always_o be_v public_o preach_v without_o any_o intermission_n and_o all_o the_o sacrament_n public_o administer_v and_o that_o sincere_o and_o lawful_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n as_o we_o will_v here_o after_o declare_v in_o the_o controversye_n concern_v the_o sacrament_n 5._o the_o lutheran_n that_o they_o may_v avoid_v conver_v vide_fw-la cânsuram_fw-la orientalis_n ecclesiae_fw-la â_o stanislaâ_n socolonio_n polono_n ex_fw-la graeco_fw-la in_o latinun_n conver_v this_o argument_n flee_v to_o the_o grecian_a church_n where_o they_o affirm_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n remain_v but_o they_o be_v present_o reject_v and_o condemn_v by_o they_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o answer_n of_o jeremy_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n to_o the_o german_n write_v in_o greek_a in_o the_o year_n 1576._o neither_o do_v the_o grecian_n disagree_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o those_o point_n which_o be_v now_o adays_o in_o controversy_n but_o in_o that_o one_o article_n of_o faith_n wherein_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v only_o proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o not_o the_o son_n the_o which_o error_n even_o all_o 6._o rupell_v confess_v art_n 6._o our_o adversary_n which_o follow_v luther_n and_o caluin_n do_v condemn_v aswell_o as_o we_o 6._o the_o which_o when_o the_o late_a sectary_n well_o perceave_v they_o be_v force_v at_o length_n to_o fly_v to_o those_o heretic_n which_o be_v in_o time_n past_o condemn_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n among_o who_o they_o seek_v for_o their_o church_n where_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v three_o thing_n against_o the_o great_a boldness_n of_o these_o man_n 7._o the_o first_o be_v that_o the_o true_a church_n have_v always_o continue_v as_o we_o have_v declare_v luâheran_n cap._n 3._o huius_fw-la contâ_n geneb_n in_o chron._n coccius_n tom._n 1._o l._n 8._o art_n 2._o histor_n magdeb._n luâheran_n before_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n but_o these_o man_n can_v never_o show_v a_o continual_a succession_n of_o heretic_n of_o what_o religion_n soever_o they_o be_v but_o only_o a_o interrupt_a continuance_n and_o that_o sometime_o for_o a_o great_a space_n together_o the_o which_o may_v easy_o be_v understand_v by_o genebrard_n coccius_n and_o all_o other_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n of_o what_o religion_n soever_o they_o be_v 8._o the_o second_o our_o adversary_n can_v prove_v all_o their_o point_n out_o of_o any_o one_o ancient_a heretic_n but_o they_o borrow_v 3._o lyndanus_n in_o tabulis_fw-la coccius_n tom._n 1._o lib._n 8._o art_n 3._o one_o heresy_n condemn_v in_o time_n pass_v of_o one_o and_o another_o of_o some_o other_o as_o lindanus_n and_o coccius_n very_o well_o declare_v at_o large_a 9_o the_o three_o be_v that_o our_o adversary_n must_v needs_o confess_v that_o those_o of_o who_o they_o have_v beg_v and_o borrow_v 4._o saunder_n lib._n 7._o dâ_n visibili_fw-la monar_n eccl._n prateol_n in_o elench_v hâret_n coccius_n tom._n 1._o l._n 8._o art_n 3._o &_o 4._o their_o doctrine_n do_v err_v foul_o in_o many_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o there_o can_v be_v no_o true_a church_n among_o they_o yea_o even_o those_o ancient_a heretic_n have_v firm_o and_o constant_o believe_v many_o point_n with_o we_o against_o our_o aduesary_n as_o doctor_n sanders_n gabriel_n prateolus_n and_o coccius_n do_v manifest_o declare_v 10._o the_o second_o reason_n the_o office_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v to_o bring_v forth_o child_n to_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o convert_v infidel_n and_o gentill_n from_o their_o idolatry_n to_o the_o catholyke_a faith_n this_o the_o râman_a church_n have_v perform_v not_o only_o in_o the_o first_o five_o or_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n as_o our_o adversary_n confess_v but_o in_o every_o
any_o invisible_a and_o unknown_a fine_a calu._n l._n 1._o inst_z c._n 8._o sect_n 9_o in_o fine_a church_n but_o from_o the_o visible_a roman_a church_n wherefore_o say_v caluin_n it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o all_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n come_v no_o otherwise_o to_o all_o posterity_n but_o as_o it_o be_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n deliver_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o ancient_a father_n continual_o from_o year_n to_o year_n thus_o he_o but_o none_o have_v deliver_v the_o bibles_n from_o hand_n to_o hand_n but_o the_o roman_a church_n wherefore_o it_o be_v as_o certain_a that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n as_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v true_a scripture_n see_v we_o do_v not_o know_v this_o which_o we_o have_v to_o be_v true_a scripture_n but_o by_o the_o authority_n tradition_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n 20._o unto_o this_o that_o also_o belong_v controver_n supr_fw-la c._n 5._o huius_fw-la controver_n which_o we_o have_v prove_v before_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o true_a church_n do_v not_o only_o give_v a_o bare_a testimony_n but_o also_o sufficient_a authority_n to_o the_o scripture_n for_o this_o the_o only_a roman_a church_n and_o no_o other_o abundant_o perform_v 21._o the_o seven_o reason_n the_o office_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v to_o judge_v of_o all_o controversy_n which_o do_v arise_v among_o christian_n either_o in_o point_n of_o faith_n or_o other_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n but_o to_o the_o roman_a church_n only_o and_o to_o no_o other_o beside_o all_o controversy_n be_v bring_v which_o arise_v in_o the_o church_n either_o in_o faith_n or_o other_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n for_o unto_o this_o as_o to_o the_o seat_n count_n supr_fw-la c._n 7._o huius_fw-la count_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o supreme_a church_n all_o have_v recourse_n who_o have_v any_o injury_n or_o wrong_n do_v they_o so_o s._n athanasius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n so_o peter_n his_o successor_n so_o s._n john_n chrysostome_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o many_o other_o do_v of_o who_o bellarmine_n 16._o âaron_fw-fr tun_n 3._o 4._o 5._o 6._o &_o 7._o calu._n l_o 4._o inst_z c._n 8._o sect_n 16._o and_o baronius_n more_o at_o large_a the_o which_o caluin_n also_o can_v deny_v 22._o hereunto_o also_o it_o belong_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v confirm_v all_o general_a counsel_n lawful_o assemble_v as_o bellarmine_n declare_v and_o baronius_n more_o citaâââ_n bellarm._n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr eccles_n ânilit_fw-la c._n ââ_o baron_fw-fr loc_fw-la citaâââ_n at_o large_a in_o every_o age_n 23._o the_o eight_o reason_n the_o office_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v to_o ordain_v &_o appoint_v lawful_a pastor_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o to_o conserve_v always_o the_o ordinary_a vocation_n as_o we_o also_o prove_v before_o but_o our_o adversary_n can_v assign_v no_o other_o church_n but_o the_o roman_a which_o have_v always_o have_v this_o ordinary_a vocation_n and_o continual_a succession_n of_o pastor_n and_o the_o ordinary_a authority_n to_o send_v and_o institute_v pastor_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n 24._o the_o nine_o reason_n the_o office_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v to_o teach_v a_o true_a faith_n without_o any_o error_n so_o that_o in_o no_o one_o point_n conârou_fw-fr cap._n 8._o âu_n conârou_fw-fr of_o doctrine_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n she_o may_v err_v as_o we_o have_v already_o prove_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n but_o our_o adversary_n can_v show_v no_o other_o church_n beside_o the_o roman_a count_n cap._n 7._o âuius_fw-la count_n which_o have_v not_o often_o err_v in_o faith_n neither_o dare_v our_o adversary_n affirm_v that_o subfinem_fw-la sand._n dâ_n visibili_fw-la monar_n eccles_n pertotum_fw-la l._n 7._o bell._n in_o quinque_fw-la lib._n dâ_n rom._n pontif_n coccius_n tom._n 1._o l._n 1._o artic._n 11._o &_o seq_fw-la baron_fw-fr per_fw-la omnes_fw-la 12._o tomos_n calu._n l._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n â_o sect_n 16._o subfinem_fw-la there_o be_v as_o yet_o among_o they_o any_o visible_a church_n which_o can_v err_v in_o faith_n but_o doctor_n sanders_n bellarmine_n coccius_n &_o baronius_n do_v most_o evident_o demonstrate_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n never_o err_v hitherto_o in_o doctrine_n concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n 25._o and_o here_o it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o in_o all_o other_o church_n found_v by_o the_o apostle_n yea_o in_o the_o patriarch_n seat_v themselves_o there_o have_v not_o be_v only_a heresy_n but_o also_o many_o archbishop_n heretic_n but_o only_o the_o roman_a church_n among_o they_o all_o have_v always_o be_v free_a &_o unstained_a with_o any_o heresy_n the_o which_o caluin_n do_v plain_o acknowledge_v when_o he_o write_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o old_a heresye_n be_v not_o so_o troublesome_a as_o other_o church_n be_v and_o that_o it_o keep_v more_o exact_o than_o the_o rest_n the_o doctrine_n once_o deliver_v unto_o she_o by_o the_o apostle_n but_o he_o bad_o asâr_fw-mi beth_fw-mi this_o to_o the_o power_n and_o strenge_v of_o nature_n or_o to_o the_o generous_a disposition_n of_o the_o roman_n &_o not_o to_o the_o providence_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n 26._o much_o better_o do_v the_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o rome_n refer_v it_o to_o the_o singular_a providence_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o prayer_n of_o christ_n of_o the_o which_o christ_n himself_o speak_v 32._o luc._n 2d_o v._o 32._o when_o he_o say_v but_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o peter_n that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o and_o indeed_o bellarmine_n â_o bell_n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr rom_n pont._n c._n â_o allege_v seven_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o attribute_n this_o to_o the_o prayer_n of_o christ_n 27._o the_o ten_o reason_n the_o proper_a and_o chief_a office_n of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v to_o bring_v man_n to_o their_o eternal_a salvation_n so_o that_o without_o her_o help_n or_o without_o she_o we_o can_v hope_v to_o be_v save_v as_o we_o prove_v before_o by_o our_o adversary_n doctrine_n âuiuscont_v supr_fw-la c_o 2._o âuiuscont_v we_o ask_v therefore_o of_o they_o whether_o our_o predecessor_n who_o live_v under_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n these_o thousand_o year_n past_a be_v all_o damn_a or_o no_o they_o dare_v not_o affirm_v they_o be_v damn_v but_o out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n we_o can_v hope_v for_o salvation_n the_o roman_a church_n therefore_o wherein_o they_o live_v and_o obtain_v their_o salvation_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n chap._n v._o by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o true_a church_n it_o be_v declare_v that_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ._n we_o have_v declare_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o there_o controu_n cap._n 19_o huius_fw-la controu_n be_v four_o most_o certain_a sign_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n all_o which_o do_v prove_v the_o roman_a to_o be_v the_o same_o church_n we_o speak_v of_o 2._o first_o as_o concern_v the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v the_o same_o faith_n in_o all_o and_o every_o particular_a point_n thereof_o with_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o also_o with_o that_o church_n which_o have_v continue_v now_o for_o the_o space_n of_o almost_o a_o thousand_o six_o hundred_o year_n as_o coccius_n clear_o declare_v out_o of_o the_o writing_n of_o all_o both_o ancient_a and_o late_a historiâraphers_n thesaur_n coccius_n induobus_fw-la tom._n thesaur_n and_o that_o through_o every_o article_n âow_o in_o controversy_n and_o we_o will_v hereafter_o show_v in_o every_o one_o of_o they_o the_o conâent_n and_o harmony_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o the_o scripture_n and_o ancient_a church_n but_o on_o the_o other_o side_n among_o our_o adversary_n there_o be_v many_o jar_n and_o dissension_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n every_o one_o of_o they_o condemn_v another_o of_o heresy_n as_o the_o foresaid_a cocciuâ_n manifest_o show_v even_o by_o 10._o coccius_n tom._n 1._o l._n 8._o art_n 7._o 8._o 9_o &_o 10._o our_o adversary_n own_o writing_n wherefore_o it_o be_v most_o manifest_a that_o there_o be_v perfect_a unity_n and_o agreement_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n concern_v all_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o our_o adversary_n do_v differ_v and_o disagree_v almost_o in_o every_o article_n thereof_o 3._o and_o here_o it_o be_v diligent_o to_o be_v consider_v that_o this_o do_v not_o happen_v unto_o our_o adversary_n by_o a_o mere_a chance_n only_o or_o by_o the_o malice_n of_o some_o few_o of_o they_o as_o they_o say_v it_o do_v but_o even_o necessary_o out_o of_o the_o nature_n and_o condition_n of_o their_o doctrine_n for_o they_o teach_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o superior_a unto_o who_o all_o shall_v be_v obedient_a and_o submit_v themselves_o no_o judge_n of_o controversye_n who_o judgement_n and_o definition_n in_o those_o
confession_n for_o we_o do_v not_o separate_v s._n peter_n from_o his_o faith_n or_o from_o the_o public_a profession_n thereof_o but_o we_o only_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o faith_n and_o confession_n of_o s._n peter_n alone_o and_o of_o no_o other_o 22._o and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o same_o holy_a father_n who_o in_o some_o place_n affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o faith_n and_o confession_n of_o s._n peter_n do_v else_o where_o 21._o s._n epiph._n contra_fw-la haeres_fw-la 50._o quae_fw-la est_fw-la catharorun_n chryson_v hon_fw-fr 55._o in_o mat._n s._n aug._n tom_n 1._o l._n retractat_fw-la cap._n 21._o plain_o testify_v that_o it_o be_v build_v upon_o s._n peter_n himself_o yea_o even_o in_o the_o same_o place_n they_o sometime_o say_v that_o it_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o faith_n or_o confession_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o sometime_o upon_o s._n peter_n himself_o as_o appear_v by_o s._n epiphanius_n and_o s._n chrysostome_n 23._o we_o know_v also_o very_o well_o that_o s._n augustine_n in_o some_o place_n understand_v by_o this_o word_n rock_n christ_n himself_o but_o he_o do_v not_o reject_v the_o common_a exposition_n of_o other_o holy_a father_n yea_o he_o confirm_v the_o same_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o s._n ambrose_n and_o he_o testify_v himself_o that_o he_o hold_v that_o opinion_n in_o other_o place_n for_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v reprehend_v but_o rather_o to_o be_v great_o commend_v who_o attribute_v many_o literal_a sense_n to_o the_o same_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n so_o that_o they_o do_v not_o reject_v and_o condemn_v the_o common_a and_o approve_a sense_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o we_o have_v already_o declare_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n seq_fw-la contro_fw-la 1._o c._n 15._o §._o 7._o &_o seq_fw-la 24._o true_o even_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o confess_v that_o the_o foresaid_a exposition_n of_o s._n augustine_n be_v both_o force_v &_o harsh_a in_o itself_o for_o see_v that_o neither_o in_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n which_o go_v before_o nor_o in_o the_o confession_n itself_o of_o s._n peter_n there_o be_v any_o mention_n make_v of_o a_o rock_n the_o particle_n this_o can_v demonstrate_v that_o which_o be_v not_o in_o 18._o calu._n ad_fw-la haec_fw-la verba_fw-la s._n mat._n in_o sva_fw-la harmonia_fw-la beza_n inc_fw-la 16._o mat._n ad_fw-la v._o 18._o the_o whole_a sentence_n but_o violent_o wherefore_o our_o adversary_n leave_v this_o exposition_n of_o s._n augustine_n they_o understand_v by_o the_o rock_n either_o the_o faith_n of_o s._n peter_n as_o caluin_n do_v or_o with_o beza_n his_o confession_n and_o they_o both_o confess_v that_o the_o word_n cepha_n in_o the_o syriac_a tongue_n be_v the_o same_o in_o both_o place_n when_o christ_n say_v thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n and_o the_o greek_a word_n also_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d do_v only_o differ_v in_o their_o termination_n and_o not_o in_o substance_n 25._o but_o albeit_o caluin_n commend_v citato_fw-la calun_n loco_fw-la citato_fw-la that_o derivation_n of_o the_o word_n peter_n which_o s._n augustine_n set_v down_o to_o wit_n that_o petrus_n be_v name_v of_o petrâ_n as_o christianus_n of_o christo_n yet_o citato_fw-la beza_n loco_fw-la citato_fw-la beza_n write_v more_o true_o that_o christ_n speak_v in_o the_o syriake_n tongue_n use_v no_o derivation_n of_o name_n but_o say_v cepha_n in_o both_o place_n our_o adversary_n therefore_o do_v not_o well_o to_o object_v s._n augustine_n exposition_n against_o we_o the_o which_o they_o themselves_o acknowledge_v not_o to_o be_v the_o literal_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n chap._n vii_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o chief_a and_o head_n of_o all_o other_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o even_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o the_o ancient_a holy_a father_n do_v not_o only_o with_o uniform_a consent_n affirm_v the_o roman_a to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o that_o it_o be_v the_o chief_a &_o most_o principal_a church_n of_o all_o in_o so_o much_o that_o they_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n they_o do_v write_v in_o the_o praise_n and_o commendation_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o of_o the_o pope_n the_o supreme_a pastor_n thereof_o as_o may_v evident_o be_v see_v in_o catholic_a writer_n 7._o bell._n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr rom._n pont_n c._n 13._o &_o seq_fw-la coâc_fw-la tun_n 1_o l._n 7._o art_n 5._o 6._o &_o 7._o which_o be_v relate_v by_o bellarmine_n and_o coccius_n we_o for_o brevity_n sake_n will_v only_o allege_v two_o of_o the_o holy_a father_n by_o who_o it_o may_v easy_o be_v gather_v what_o be_v the_o judgement_n and_o opinion_n of_o the_o rest_n concern_v this_o matter_n 2._o the_o first_o be_v that_o most_o ancient_a holy_a s._n irenaeus_n who_o live_v even_o in_o the_o apostle_n 3._o s._n iren._n l._n â_o adverse_a haeres_fw-la cap._n 3._o tyme._n because_o say_v he_o it_o will_v be_v too_o long_o to_o recount_v in_o this_o volume_n the_o succession_n of_o all_o church_n we_o propose_v the_o tradition_n and_o âayth_n of_o the_o great_a most_o ancient_a and_o best_a know_a church_n found_v by_o the_o two_o glorious_a apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n which_o by_o preach_v and_o succession_n of_o bishop_n have_v descend_v even_o from_o the_o apostle_n to_o we_o do_v confound_v all_o those_o who_o by_o any_o mean_n gather_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o that_o they_o shall_v either_o by_o their_o own_o foolish_a fancy_n or_o by_o vain_a glory_n or_o by_o the_o great_a blindness_n of_o their_o understanding_n or_o follow_v any_o bad_a opinion_n for_o all_o other_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o faithful_a true_a believer_n threughout_v the_o whole_a world_n must_v needs_o come_v unto_o this_o church_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o most_o potent_a principality_n thereof_o hitherto_o be_v the_o word_n of_o s._n irenaeus_n and_o afterward_o he_o recount_v the_o succession_n of_o all_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n till_o joan._n s._n aug._n tom._n 9_o â_o tract_n 56._o in_o euang._n s._n joan._n his_o tyme._n 3._o the_o other_o be_v s._n augustine_n who_o our_o adversary_n also_o esteem_v very_o much_o who_o know_v not_o say_v he_o that_o bless_a s._n peter_n be_v the_o chief_a and_o head_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n thus_o donatistarun_n s._n august_n tom._n 2._o epist_n 162._o ad_fw-la episc_n donatistarun_n s._n augustine_n of_o s._n peter_n but_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n he_o say_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v always_o flourish_v the_o chief_a power_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o apostolical_a chair_n if_o we_o believe_v s._n augustine_n nothing_o be_v more_o clear_a and_o manifest_a 4._o but_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o cite_v any_o more_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n for_o even_o our_o adversary_n confess_v that_o this_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n of_o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n council_n bucerus_n in_o praeparator_n ad_fw-la council_n concern_v this_o matter_n thus_o write_v martin_n bucer_n sometime_o caluin_v master_n and_o chief_a patron_n not_o only_o in_o his_o own_o name_n but_o also_o of_o all_o the_o lutheran_n we_o confess_v plain_o with_o all_o âur_n heart_n say_v he_o that_o among_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v always_o obtain_v the_o chief_a authority_n and_o supremacy_n above_o all_o other_o because_o it_o have_v the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o who_o bishop_n have_v always_o be_v account_v the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n thus_o bucer_n 5._o and_o caluin_n albeit_o he_o inveigh_v bitter_o against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n yet_o constrain_v to_o speak_v truth_n write_v in_o 16._o calu._n l._n 4._o inst_z it_z c._n â_o sect_n 16._o this_o manner_n i_o will_v first_o say_v this_o aforehand_o that_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o the_o old_a writer_n do_v every_o where_o give_v great_a honour_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o do_v speak_v reverent_o of_o it_o and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o say_v thus_o for_o that_o same_o opinion_n which_o i_o wot_v not_o how_o be_v grow_v in_o force_n that_o it_o be_v found_v 1._o calu._n l._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 7._o sect_n 11._o verba_fw-la istornm_fw-la actor_n cicantur_fw-la ab_fw-la ab_fw-la ipsis_fw-la luth._o in_o l._n colloq_fw-la alâing_v extant_a etiam_fw-la apud_fw-la sand._n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr âustif_a cap._n 1._o de_fw-fr smalcald_n articul_fw-la &_o philippi_n subscript_n habetur_fw-la ibid._n à _fw-la facult_a wittemb_n edito_fw-la contra_fw-la gâso_fw-la peucerun_v a_o 1597._o in_o princ_fw-la c._n 6._o fol._n 60._o p._n 1._o and_o ordain_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o peter_n much_o avail_v to_o
in_o the_o former_a edition_n 1559._o calu._n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la reg._n angl._n ante_fw-la comment_n in_o isaiam_n edit_fw-la illiââ_n anni_fw-la 1559._o of_o his_o commentary_n upon_o isaias_n which_o be_v set_v forth_o in_o french_a in_o the_o year_n 1552._o but_o in_o his_o latter_a latin_a edition_n in_o the_o year_n 1559._o which_o he_o will_v needs_o have_v account_v a_o new_a work_n be_v now_o become_v more_o wary_a he_o twice_o omit_v that_o particle_n and_o that_o not_o unaduised_o but_o of_o seâ_n purpose_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o his_o former_a edition_n 5._o the_o second_o testimony_n be_v also_o in_o the_o same_o prophet_n âsaiâ_n in_o which_o much_o more_o clear_o be_v declare_v the_o exceed_a great_a honour_n which_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o earth_n shall_v do_v unto_o the_o church_n for_o thus_o god_n speak_v to_o the_o church_n of_o 23._o isa_n 49._o v._n 23._o christ_n king_n shall_v be_v thy_o nurse_v father_n and_o queen_n shall_v be_v thy_o nurse_v thy_o shall_v adore_v thou_o with_o their_o face_n bow_v down_o to_o the_o earth_n and_o liâke_v up_o the_o dust_n of_o thy_o foot_n where_o not_o only_o be_v express_v that_o humble_a adoration_n by_o which_o one_o prostrate_v himself_o before_o another_o bow_n down_o his_o face_n even_o to_o the_o earth_n but_o there_o be_v further_o add_v a_o new_a metaphor_n of_o embrace_v and_o kiss_v of_o foot_n put_v in_o practice_n by_o christian_a emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n thereby_o to_o honour_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o he_o the_o church_n or_o rather_o christ_n himself_o for_o whosoever_o with_o greediness_n and_o fervour_n hasten_v to_o the_o embrace_n and_o kiss_v of_o the_o foot_n of_o any_o man_n seem_v as_o it_o be_v to_o lick_v and_o thereby_o to_o wipe_v away_o the_o dust_n of_o his_o foot_n for_o the_o hebrew_n word_n signifi_v to_o wipe_v away_o in_o what_o manner_n soever_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o book_n of_o number_n the_o 22._o chap._n and_o the_o 4._o v._o and_o the_o 3._o of_o king_n chap._n 18._o v._n 38._o 6._o the_o prophet_n isay_n then_o in_o these_o word_n foretell_v that_o king_n &_o queen_n that_o be_v prince_n man_n and_o woman_n shall_v prostrate_v themselves_o down_o to_o the_o earth_n at_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o church_n so_o as_o by_o embrace_v and_o kiss_v thereof_o they_o shall_v seem_v to_o wipe_v away_o the_o very_a dust_n of_o the_o church_n foot_n which_o prophesy_n have_v byâ_n fullfil_v of_o old_a and_o as_o we_o see_v be_v still_o fullfil_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n by_o the_o humble_a and_o religious_a submission_n express_v by_o christian_a catholic_a prince_n in_o the_o embrace_n and_o kiss_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n foot_n the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n which_o kind_n of_o religious_a worship_n see_v it_o be_v so_o many_o age_n ago_o foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n our_o adversary_n have_v small_a reason_n to_o think_v the_o same_o so_o absurd_a a_o thing_n or_o so_o much_o estrange_v from_o christian_a piety_n 7._o the_o three_o testimony_n be_v take_v from_o the_o same_o prophet_n which_o no_o less_o manifest_o do_v show_v unto_o we_o that_o such_o a_o adoration_n and_o kiss_n of_o the_o church_n foot_n be_v to_o be_v practise_v as_o have_v be_v say_v for_o among_o many_o other_o thing_n which_o he_o fore_o tell_v appertain_v to_o the_o majesty_n and_o powerful_a authority_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n 14._o isa_n 60._o v._n 14._o to_o come_v he_o set_v down_o this_o promise_n make_v by_o god_n to_o the_o church_n the_o son_n of_o they_o that_o humble_a and_o afflict_a thââ_n shall_v come_v and_o bow_v unto_o thou_o and_o all_o they_o that_o detract_v from_o thou_o shall_v adore_v thy_o footstep_n which_o in_o the_o hebrew_n be_v much_o more_o clear_a where_o it_o be_v thus_o they_o shall_v adore_v the_o bend_n of_o thy_o foot_n than_o the_o which_o nothing_o can_v be_v say_v more_o manifest_o for_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o church_n foot_n in_o her_o visible_a head_n for_o the_o bend_n of_o the_o foot_n by_o the_o figure_n synecdoche_n signify_v the_o foot_n themselves_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o three_o of_o iâsuâ_n and_o the_o 13._o v._o for_o the_o bend_n of_o the_o foot_n in_o that_o place_n be_v in_o the_o 15._o v._o follownig_v call_v foot_n so_o the_o bend_n of_o the_o hand_n themselves_o 1._o reg._n 5._o v._n 4._o and_o 4._o reg._n 9_o c._n v._o 35._o which_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n convince_v caluân_v as_o malbe_n say_v we_o see_v then_o how_o the_o prophet_n isaias_n not_o in_o one_o place_n only_o but_o in_o many_o fortel_v this_o adoration_n as_o a_o thing_n very_o remarkable_a and_o which_o great_o set_v forth_o the_o honour_n and_o excellency_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n 8._o the_o four_o testimony_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o apocalyps_n where_o s._n john_n testify_v in_o express_a term_n that_o god_n make_v such_o a_o promise_n to_o the_o angel_n that_o be_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o philadelphia_n behold_v i_o will_v make_v they_o coâe_n and_o adore_v before_o thy_o foot_n and_o they_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o have_v love_v thou_o 9_o apocal._n â_o v._o 9_o which_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v i_o will_v make_v they_o come_v and_o adore_v thy_o fear_n for_o in_o the_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n phrase_n to_o adore_v before_o any_o thing_n 19_o 1._o reg._n 1._o v._n 19_o be_v to_o adore_v the_o thing_n so_o elcana_n and_o anna_n his_o wife_n be_v say_v to_o have_v adore_v before_o our_o lord_n when_o they_o adore_v our_o lord_n himself_o so_o s._n john_n in_o his_o apocalyps_n write_v that_o all_o nation_n shall_v come_v and_o adore_v before_o god_n 4._o apoc._n 15._o v._o 4._o that_o be_v they_o shall_v adore_v god_n himself_o last_o that_o which_o by_o s._n lukâ_n be_v express_v in_o these_o word_n if_o thou_o shall_v adore_v before_o i_o 9_o luc._n 4._o v._n 7._o matth._n 4._o v._n 9_o s._n matthew_n express_v thus_o if_o fall_v down_o thou_o shall_v adore_v i_o it_o be_v all_o one_o therefore_o in_o the_o scripture_n to_o adore_v before_o a_o thing_n and_o to_o adore_v the_o thing_n moreover_o if_o god_n be_v willing_a and_o please_v that_o man_n shall_v adore_v thâ_n ãâã_d of_o the_o bishop_n of_o philadelphia_n much_o more_o grateful_a and_o acceptable_a will_v it_o be_v to_o he_o that_o christian_n with_o a_o godly_a affection_n shall_v prostrate_v themselves_o at_o his_o feeâe_n who_o be_v the_o supreme_a bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o by_o kiss_v of_o they_o exhibit_v unto_o he_o not_o only_o a_o cââill_n but_o also_o a_o religious_a adoration_n adore_v he_o in_o god_n and_o for_o god_n which_o be_v well_o 9_o apoc._n 3._o v._o 9_o express_v by_o god_n himself_o when_o he_o say_v they_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o have_v love_v thou_o so_o as_o this_o adoration_n must_v be_v admit_v or_o express_v scripture_n deny_v 9_o neither_o be_v this_o any_o whit_n differ_v from_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n as_o our_o adversary_n object_n but_o rather_o very_o conformable_a and_o agreeable_a thereunto_o for_o it_o be_v manifest_v that_o kiss_n of_o foot_n be_v exhibit_v of_o old_a not_o only_o to_o tim._n hier._n pist_o 61_o ad_fw-la pamach_n n._n â5_n iux_fw-la edit_fw-la mariani_n victor_n chrys_n hon_fw-fr 14._o in_o 1._o epist_n ad_fw-la tim._n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o also_o to_o other_o holy_a personage_n for_o thus_o write_v s._n hierome_n of_o bless_a epiphanius_n man_n and_o woman_n of_o all_o age_n do_v flock_n unto_o he_o in_o great_a troop_n offer_v their_o little_a one_o kiss_v his_o foot_n etc._n etc._n and_o s._n chrysostome_n vehement_o exhort_v the_o people_n to_o prostrate_v themselves_o at_o the_o foot_n of_o all_o monk_n in_o sign_n of_o honour_n and_o reverence_n come_v say_v he_o and_o touch_v their_o holy_a foot_n for_o it_o be_v much_o more_o hââââârable_a to_o touch_v their_o fâât_n then_o to_o touch_v the_o head_n of_o other_o 10._o and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o ancient_a custom_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o such_o as_o come_v to_o salute_v the_o supreme_a bishop_n shall_v prostrate_v themselves_o and_o kiss_v his_o foot_n be_v sufficient_o prove_v by_o the_o history_n of_o s._n susanna_n recite_v by_o baronius_n and_o tertullian_n ult._n baron_fw-fr tun_n 2._o a_o 294._o n._n ult._n who_o live_v a_o hundred_o year_n before_o susanna_n make_v also_o not_o obscure_a mention_n hereof_o for_o describe_v the_o manner_n after_o which_o in_o his_o time_n penitent_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n among_o other_o thing_n he_o say_v that_o penitent_n be_v wont_a to_o fall_v down_o to_o the_o
9_o tertul._n the_o penitent_a c._n 9_o priest_n and_o to_o kneel_v to_o the_o dear_o belove_a of_o god_n which_o be_v nothing_o âlâ_n but_o kneel_v down_o to_o adore_v and_o the_o same_o tertullian_n else_o where_o say_v that_o they_o be_v 13._o tertul._n de_fw-fr pudicit_fw-la c._n 13._o wont_a to_o lick_v up_o the_o footstep_n of_o every_o one_o that_o past_a where_o he_o seem_v to_o allude_v to_o those_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n isay_n cite_v 4._o isa_n 49._o v._n 23._o isa_n 60._o v._n 4._o a_o little_a above_o they_o shall_v lick_v up_o the_o dust_n of_o thy_o foot_n and_o adore_v the_o step_n of_o thy_o foot_n now_o if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o they_o lick_v the_o footestepeâ_n of_o all_o christian_n much_o more_o doubtless_o the_o footstep_n of_o the_o supreme_a bishop_n who_o receive_v they_o into_o the_o church_n and_o who_o at_o that_o time_n be_v call_v the_o bless_a pope_n as_o the_o same_o tertullian_n witness_v 11._o neither_o do_v this_o adoration_n derogate_v any_o thing_n from_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n or_o christ_n but_o rather_o much_o more_o illustrate_v and_o set_v it_o forth_o for_o this_o honour_n be_v exhibit_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n not_o for_o his_o own_o holiness_n or_o any_o other_o quality_n with_o which_o he_o be_v adorn_v as_o a_o private_a person_n but_o only_o for_o that_o authority_n and_o spiritual_a power_n which_o he_o receive_v from_o christ_n and_o which_o indeed_o proper_o appertain_v to_o god_n and_o to_o christ_n and_o therefore_o in_o he_o and_o by_o he_o christ_n who_o person_n he_o represent_v be_v honour_v and_o adore_v according_a to_o those_o word_n of_o tertullian_n when_o cero_o tertul._n the_o penitent_a cero_o therefore_o say_v he_o thou_o stretche_v thyself_o forth_o to_o the_o knee_n of_o thy_o brethren_n thou_o lay_v hold_v on_o christ_n and_o make_v thy_o supplication_n to_o christ_n and_o this_o caluin_n himself_o by_o the_o force_n of_o truth_n confess_v when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o church_n for_o expound_v those_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n isay_n they_o shall_v adore_v the_o step_n of_o thy_o foot_n or_o as_o he_o translate_v they_o shall_v bow_v themselves_o down_o to_o the_o plant_n of_o thy_o foot_n thus_o he_o write_v here_o some_o man_n 14._o calu_n in_o c._n 60._o matth._n v._o 14._o will_v ask_v whether_o this_o honour_n of_o which_o the_o prophet_n speak_v be_v not_o too_o much_o and_o great_a then_o be_v to_o be_v exhibit_v to_o the_o church_n for_o to_o how_o ourselves_o down_n and_o prostrate_v ourselves_o be_v sign_n of_o that_o honour_n which_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o admit_v i_o answer_v this_o honour_n be_v not_o exhibit_v to_o the_o member_n but_o to_o the_o head_n to_o wit_n christ_n who_o be_v adore_v in_o the_o church_n so_o caluin_n which_o also_o those_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o apocalyps_n manifest_o declare_v to_o be_v true_a i_o will_v make_v they_o adore_v thou_o before_o thy_o foot_n and_o they_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o have_v love_v thou_o for_o therefore_o be_v this_o honour_n exhibit_v to_o the_o supreme_a bishop_n because_o god_n have_v so_o exalt_v the_o roman_a sea_n and_o bâene_v so_o liberal_a towards_o it_o which_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o exceed_v great_a love_n and_o here_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o same_o veneration_n be_v exhibit_v to_o all_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o well_o to_o the_o bad_a as_o to_o the_o good_a for_o they_o be_v not_o honour_v for_o their_o own_o goodness_n but_o for_o the_o office_n which_o christ_n bestow_v upon_o they_o as_o also_o they_o be_v call_v holy_a and_o most_o holy_a not_o for_o their_o 15._o act._n 28._o v._n 15._o own_o personal_a holiness_n but_o for_o the_o holiness_n of_o christ_n who_o person_n and_o place_n they_o sustain_v upon_o earth_n and_o for_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o office_n which_o they_o receive_v from_o god_n even_o as_o s._n paul_n call_v festus_n precedent_n of_o jury_n very_o good_a not_o for_o any_o goodness_n of_o his_o 13._o baron_fw-fr tun_n 1._o anno_fw-la 58._o num_fw-la 13._o own_o for_o he_o be_v a_o infidel_n and_o a_o wicked_a man_n but_o in_o regard_n of_o his_o office_n for_o so_o the_o precedent_n of_o pronince_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v style_v as_o well_o note_v baronius_n 12._o moreover_o whereas_o in_o the_o scripture_n foot_n signify_v divine_a mission_n and_o vocation_n which_o be_v most_o ample_a in_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n no_o marvel_n 15._o rom._n 10._o v._n 15._o if_o great_a veneration_n be_v exhibit_v to_o his_o foot_n &_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o cross_n upon_o his_o shoe_n which_o all_o kiss_n to_o give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o the_o honour_n be_v not_o exhibit_v to_o he_o but_o to_o christ_n crucify_v who_o he_o represent_v 13._o to_o conclude_v here_o hence_o be_v easy_o solue_v that_o which_o our_o object_n of_o s._n peter_n refuse_v to_o be_v adore_v by_o corneleus_fw-la 26._o act._n 10._o v._n 25._o &_o 26._o the_o centurion_n for_o cornelius_n adore_v not_o s._n peter_n in_o respect_n of_o christ_n who_o vicar_n he_o be_v but_o in_o respect_n of_o himself_o who_o he_o take_v to_o be_v some_o god_n as_o do_v the_o licaonian_o victorij_fw-la act._n 10._o v._n 10._o hieron_n advers_a vigil_n ep_v 53._o n._n 12._o iuxta_fw-la edit_fw-la marian_n victorij_fw-la think_v of_o paul_n &_o barnabas_n so_o s._n hierome_n or_o sure_o they_o think_v peter_n to_o be_v more_o they_o a_o man_n as_o manifest_o appare_v by_o s._n peter_n answer_n arise_v for_o i_o also_o be_o a_o man_n &_o therefore_o cornelius_n be_v to_o be_v admonish_v &_o correct_v for_o adoration_n be_v either_o good_a or_o bad_a according_a to_o the_o cause_n or_o reason_n for_o which_o it_o be_v exhibit_v now_o the_o cause_n for_o which_o catholic_n exhibit_v the_o same_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v very_o good_a to_o wit_n the_o excellent_a power_n of_o christ_n or_o rather_o christ_n himself_o govern_v &_o rule_v his_o church_n in_o his_o vicar_n 26._o act._n 16._o v._n 26._o and_o therefore_o this_o adoration_n be_v good_a and_o grateful_a to_o god_n but_o the_o cause_n of_o cornelius_n adoration_n be_v fond_a and_o false_a and_o therefore_o his_o adoration_n be_v naught_o and_o worthy_o reprehend_v 14._o i_o know_v our_o adversary_n often_o object_v that_o pope_n alexander_n the_o three_o do_v insolent_o trample_v under_o his_o foot_n fredrick_n the_o emperor_n but_o this_o foolish_a fable_n be_v sound_o and_o copious_o refute_v by_o baronius_n cite_v the_o testimony_n of_o such_o as_o be_v present_a and_o have_v commit_v to_o write_v all_o that_o pass_v in_o which_o there_o be_v nothing_o unusual_a but_o the_o pope_n admit_v from_o fredrick_n the_o accustom_a adoration_n he_o that_o desire_v more_o concern_v the_o kiss_n of_o the_o pope_n foot_n may_v read_v joseph_n stephânus_n who_o have_v write_v a_o whole_a book_n thereof_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o to_o have_v brief_o prove_v the_o same_o by_o many_o evident_a testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n chap._n x._o of_o general_n counsel_n general_z counsel_n do_v represent_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n wherefore_o we_o will_v now_o speak_v a_o little_a of_o they_o for_o see_v that_o we_o have_v already_o speak_v of_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n it_o remain_v we_o treat_v of_o the_o body_n thereof_o but_o this_o we_o will_v do_v brief_o for_o our_o adversary_n now_o adays_o grant_v many_o thing_n concern_v this_o matter_n which_o in_o time_n past_a they_o deny_v to_o the_o end_n therefore_o that_o the_o true_a state_n of_o this_o controversy_n may_v the_o better_o be_v understand_v three_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v which_o our_o adversary_n have_v now_o learn_v by_o experience_n to_o be_v true_a do_v willing_o grant_v unto_o us._n 2._o the_o first_o be_v that_o these_o counsel_n be_v very_o profitable_a &_o that_o the_o authority_n thereof_o be_v not_o to_o be_v despise_v for_o see_v that_o 17._o hebr._n ulâ_n vers_fw-la 17._o the_o apostle_n warn_v we_o to_o obey_v every_o true_a pastor_n much_o more_o be_v we_o bind_v to_o obey_v many_o assemble_v together_o for_o which_o cause_n our_o adversary_n will_v also_o that_o we_o shall_v all_o obey_v their_o synodical_a assembly_n hereupon_o say_v caluin_n true_o 13._o calu._n l._n 4._o inst_z c._n 9_o sect_n 13._o we_o do_v willing_o grant_v that_o if_o there_o happen_v debate_n about_o any_o doctrine_n there_o be_v no_o better_o nor_o sure_a remedy_n then_o if_o a_o synod_n of_o true_a bishop_n assemble_v together_o where_o the_o doctrine_n in_o controversy_n may_v be_v discuss_v thus_o he_o and_o even_o natural_a reason_n itself_o convince_v this_o to_o be_v true_a as_o caluin_n also_o confess_v for_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n for_o many_o
assemble_v together_o to_o 13._o calu._n eadem_fw-la sect_n 13._o discern_v the_o truth_n from_o falsehood_n then_o if_o any_o one_o shall_v attempt_v it_o at_o home_n 2._o the_o second_o thing_n which_o our_o adversary_n grant_v be_v that_o general_n counsel_n â_o mat._n 18._o v._n 20._o calu._n c._n 6._o citato_fw-la sect_n 2._o 6._o 9_o sequent_a beza_n 3._o volume_n tract_n theol._n tract_n 6._o de_fw-fr eccles_n notis_fw-la pag._n 1._o 8._o ãâã_d ann_n 19ââ_n calu._n l._n 4_o inst_z cap._n 9_o sect_n â_o when_o they_o be_v assemble_v together_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n do_v not_o err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o they_o confess_v that_o christ_n promise_v this_o to_o two_o or_o three_o assemble_v together_o in_o his_o name_n thus_o caluin_n and_o he_o add_v that_o they_o may_v err_v when_o they_o be_v not_o callâd_v together_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n the_o which_o not_o catholic_a do_v ever_o deny_v as_o will_v appear_v hereafter_o 4._o the_o three_o thing_n which_o they_o admit_v be_v that_o the_o first_o general_n counsel_n be_v lawful_o assemble_v and_o that_o they_o do_v not_o err_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n thus_o beza_n express_o who_o admit_v also_o the_o five_o &_o sixth_o general_a council_n &_o he_o say_v that_o all_o those_o of_o his_o religion_n be_v of_o this_o opinion_n caluin_n also_o of_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n write_v thus_o i_o reverence_v they_o from_o my_o hart_n and_o with_o they_o to_o be_v have_v in_o their_o due_a honour_n 8._o calu._n eodâ_fw-fr c._n 9_o sect_n 8._o with_o all_o man_n and_o a_o little_a after_o when_o he_o treat_v of_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n he_o say_v that_o beside_o those_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n to_o wit_n nicânum_n constantinopolitanun_n the_o 1._o ephesine_n &_o chalcedonerse_n he_o admit_v also_o such_o other_o ancient_a counsel_n the_o which_o can_v be_v understand_v 9_o eodem_fw-la c._n 9_o sect_n 9_o but_o of_o the_o five_o and_o sixth_o for_o a_o little_a after_o he_o plain_o reject_v the_o seven_o 5._o here_o it_o be_v also_o to_o be_v note_v that_o luther_n in_o the_o beginning_n reject_v whole_o angliae_fw-la luth._o in_o l._n contra_fw-la regem_fw-la angliae_fw-la all_o general_a counsel_n but_o the_o caluinist_n afterward_o by_o reason_n of_o seruetus_fw-la and_o other_o antitrinitarians_a be_v force_v to_o admit_v the_o first_o four_o counsel_n moreover_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o vbiquitarian_n lutheran_n who_o confund_v the_o property_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v constrain_v to_o admit_v also_o the_o five_o &_o sixth_o and_o these_o thing_n even_o the_o caluinist_n themselves_o do_v grant_v unto_o us._n 6._o but_o catholic_n teach_v these_o five_o thing_n of_o the_o general_a counsel_n the_o first_o be_v that_o a_o general_a council_n can_v without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n make_v any_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n but_o her_o office_n be_v to_o explicate_v clear_o and_o propose_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o be_v believe_v of_o all_o the_o which_o the_o church_n have_v receive_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n for_o a_o lawful_a general_a council_n define_v nothing_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o either_o be_v not_o extant_a in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o 4._o council_n trident._n sess_v 4._o may_v not_o be_v gather_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o last_o may_v not_o evident_o be_v deduce_v out_o of_o both_o the_o which_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n do_v manifest_o profess_v for_o now_o we_o must_v not_o expect_v new_a revelation_n fine_a calu._n l._n 4._o inst_z c_o 8._o sâct_n 10._o in_o fine_a from_o heaven_n wherefore_o it_o be_v a_o mere_a slander_n that_o caluin_n say_v that_o catholic_n teach_v that_o the_o church_n have_v authority_n to_o make_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o catholic_n despise_v the_o word_n of_o god_n do_v coin_n at_o their_o own_o pleasure_n new_a point_n of_o faith_n 7._o the_o second_o be_v that_o we_o acknowledge_v 3._o s._n aug._n tun_n 7._o de_fw-fr baptis_n count_n donat_n l._n 2._o c._n 3._o that_o general_n counsel_n may_v err_v in_o matter_n which_o do_v not_o belong_v unto_o our_o faith_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n say_v s._n augustine_n one_o full_a and_o perfect_a council_n may_v be_v correct_v by_o another_o not_o in_o faith_n the_o which_o be_v never_o change_v but_o in_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n the_o which_o according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o time_n both_o be_v and_o shall_v often_o be_v change_v whereupon_o in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o write_v that_o thing_n ordain_v before_o may_v be_v change_v by_o those_o which_o come_v after_o when_o we_o see_v by_o experience_n that_o be_v open_v and_o make_v know_v which_o before_o be_v hide_v and_o secret_a for_o the_o experience_n of_o new_a matter_n which_o happen_v may_v change_v or_o correct_v the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n &_o constitutious_a but_o it_o can_v alter_v and_o change_v matter_n of_o faith_n 8._o wherefore_o caluin_n wrongful_o object_v against_o we_o that_o s._n leo_n the_o 11_o cal._n l._n 40._o just_a c._n 9_o sect_n 11_o pope_n reprehend_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n see_v that_o caluin_n himself_o acknowledge_v in_o the_o same_o place_n that_o to_o appertain_v nothing_o to_o faith_n which_o s._n leo_n reprehend_v and_o he_o also_o confess_v that_o catholic_n teach_v that_o counsel_n may_v err_v in_o those_o thing_n which_o nothing_o concern_v faith_n and_o no_o less_o foolish_o caluin_n reprehend_v the_o first_o council_n of_o 17._o calâ_n eodâ_fw-fr c._n 9_o sect_n 17._o nice_a about_o matter_n which_o do_v not_o belong_v unto_o faith_n 9_o the_o three_o be_v that_o we_o acknowledge_v those_o counsel_n may_v err_v which_o either_o be_v not_o lawful_o assemble_v or_o do_v not_o proceed_v lawful_o in_o their_o business_n they_o have_v in_o hand_n for_o such_o counsel_n indeed_o be_v not_o assemble_v together_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o this_o sort_n be_v the_o council_n of_o the_o arian_n hold_v at_o ariminum_n that_o of_o the_o eutichian_o at_o ephesus_n the_o seven_o constantinopolitan_a council_n of_o the_o image-breaker_n the_o which_o therefore_o our_o adversary_n do_v in_o vain_a object_n against_o us._n 10._o the_o four_o be_v that_o albeit_o a_o council_n be_v lawful_o assemble_v and_o seem_v to_o proceed_v orderly_o the_o definition_n notwithstanding_o thereof_o will_v not_o be_v altogether_o certain_a according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o many_o catholic_n unless_o they_o have_v their_o approbation_n from_o the_o 11._o vide_fw-la bell._n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr eccles_n milit_fw-la cap._n 11._o bishop_n of_o rome_n if_o he_o be_v not_o present_a at_o the_o council_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o before_o that_o the_o council_n be_v approve_v and_o allow_v of_o by_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v as_o yet_o a_o unperfect_a body_n of_o christ_n without_o any_o visible_a head_n and_o such_o a_o body_n may_v stumble_v &_o controu_n council_n trid._n sess_v ult._n infine_v conc._n nicaenumâ_n dequo_fw-la baron_n tun_n 3._o anno_fw-la 325._o n._n 111._o chalced._n act_n 1._o in_o fiâe_n in_o epist_n âd_a leonâm_fw-la papam_fw-la sexta._fw-la synod_n in_o ep_n adâdgathoâen_fw-mi papam_fw-la suprac_n 17._o huius_fw-la controu_n fall_v 11._o and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n demand_v her_o confirmation_n from_o pius_n 4._o who_o solemn_o afterward_o confirm_v it_o the_o which_o also_o the_o other_o ancient_a counsel_n demand_v yea_o even_o those_o which_o our_o adversary_n do_v admit_v as_o for_o example_n the_o first_o nicene_n council_n that_o of_o chalcedon_n the_o sixth_o synod_n to_o omit_v other_o late_a counsel_n 12._o the_o five_o be_v that_o we_o affirm_v a_o general_n council_n approve_v by_o the_o pope_n can_v err_v in_o faith_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o it_o be_v altogether_o necessary_a that_o there_o be_v some_o supreme_a judgement_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n whereunto_o all_o shall_v submit_v themselves_o and_o believe_v assure_o in_o all_o matter_n in_o controversy_n as_o we_o have_v prove_v before_o but_o there_o can_v be_v no_o other_o supreme_a judgement_n but_o this_o 13._o moreover_o we_o see_v that_o even_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o church_n till_o now_o all_o heresy_n and_o controversy_n concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n have_v be_v still_o end_v and_o take_v away_o by_o the_o general_a counsel_n wherefore_o they_o who_o deny_v this_o do_v open_a and_o make_v way_n for_o all_o old_a heresy_n the_o which_o when_o our_o adversary_n have_v learn_v by_o experience_n in_o the_o antitrinitarians_a anabaptiste_n vbiquitarian_n and_o such_o other_o sect_n they_o be_v force_v to_o admit_v cap._n §._o 4._o hâiuâ_fw-la cap._n those_o six_o more_o ancient_a counsel_n as_o we_o say_v before_o but_o the_o authority_n of_o all_o general_n counsel_n be_v alike_o and_o equal_a 14._o final_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o 13._o
calu._n l._n 4â_n inst_z cap._n 9_o sect_n 13._o acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v no_o better_a or_o sure_a remedy_n to_o root_v out_o and_o take_v away_o all_o heresy_n therefore_o either_o this_o be_v a_o certain_a remedy_n or_o else_o there_o be_v none_o at_o all_o the_o which_o to_o affirm_v be_v to_o deny_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n and_o his_o love_n to_o his_o church_n 15._o moreover_o that_o which_o our_o adversary_n say_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o late_a counsel_n be_v not_o lawful_a assembly_n because_o they_o have_v not_o observe_v due_a manner_n and_o form_n be_v a_o false_a lie_n first_o because_o it_o do_v not_o become_v every_o private_a man_n to_o be_v judge_n in_o this_o matter_n but_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n who_o have_v receyve_v for_o so_o many_o year_n all_o these_o as_o lawful_a counsel_n we_o must_v not_o call_v they_o any_o more_o in_o question_n 16._o and_o see_v that_o our_o adversary_n do_v embrace_v and_o approve_v the_o six_o first_o counsel_n the_o lawful_a form_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o counsel_n be_v to_o be_v fetch_v from_o they_o the_o which_o be_v exact_o observe_v in_o the_o late_a counsel_n as_o baronius_n show_v evident_o in_o every_o one_o of_o the_o first_o six_o counsel_n but_o caluin_n acknowledge_v no_o â_z calu._n c._n 9_o citato_fw-la sect_n â_z lawful_a manner_n of_o any_o synodical_a assembly_n nor_o any_o such_o to_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n but_o where_o all_o thing_n be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n only_o reject_v all_o ecclesiastical_a tradition_n but_o we_o have_v already_o prove_v that_o the_o tradition_n seq_n goât_fw-la 1._o c._n 18._o &_o seq_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v as_o a_o principal_a and_o chief_a part_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 17._o yea_o even_o this_o be_v the_o only_a cause_n why_o s._n cyprian_n and_o so_o many_o other_o holy_a bishop_n err_v in_o the_o african_a counsel_n when_o they_o determine_v that_o all_o those_o who_o be_v christen_v by_o heretic_n shall_v be_v baptize_v again_o for_o they_o confirm_v this_o their_o opinion_n very_o probable_o by_o many_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n but_o they_o reject_v the_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o the_o 9_o lyrin_fw-mi lib._n contra_fw-la heraes_fw-la c._n 9_o &_o 10._o s._n aug._n tom._n 7._o the_o baptism_n contra_fw-la donatist_n l._n 2._o c._n 7._o in_o fine_a &_o cap._n 8._o &_o 9_o s._n aug._n tom._n 7._o l._n 3_o de_fw-fr bapt_v contra_fw-la donatist_n c._n 4._o &_o l._n 3._o citato_fw-la c._n 2._o 5._o 6._o 7._o 8._o &_o 9_o loan_n 14._o â_o 9_o church_n the_o which_o they_o know_v very_o well_o be_v opposite_a to_o this_o error_n as_o though_o it_o have_v be_v contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o s._n vincentius_n lyrinensis_n declare_v very_o well_o and_o before_o he_o s._n augustine_n in_o many_o place_n 18._o and_o that_o which_o be_v more_o s._n augustine_n manifest_o write_v that_o he_o have_v be_v of_o s._n cyprian_n opinion_n by_o reason_n of_o those_o probable_a reason_n which_o be_v deduce_v out_o of_o holy_a scripture_n but_o that_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n have_v define_v the_o contrary_a and_o as_o the_o same_o holy_a father_n teach_v at_o large_a they_o most_o of_o all_o oppugned_a the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v in_o the_o same_o error_n with_o s._n cyprian_n object_v among_o other_o thing_n that_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o which_o our_o adversary_n now_o adays_o object_n against_o usâ_n god_n say_v i_o be_o the_o truth_n he_o do_v not_o say_v i_o be_o the_o custom_n unto_o who_o s._n augustine_n answer_v very_o well_o that_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o opposite_a to_o truth_n but_o it_o be_v even_o truth_n itself_o 19_o our_o adversary_n argument_n be_v of_o small_a account_n or_o moment_n caluin_n bring_v in_o the_o example_n of_o caiphas_n and_o of_o the_o jewish_a council_n wherein_o christ_n be_v condemn_v the_o same_o argument_n beza_n 25._o bez._n in_o 1._o tim._n 2._o v._n 25._o also_o allege_v but_o who_o do_v not_o know_v that_o this_o be_v neither_o a_o general_a council_n whereunto_o christ_n be_v not_o call_v nor_o any_o âther_n true_a believer_n nor_o lawful_a in_o itself_o see_v that_o it_o be_v not_o assemble_v in_o the_o name_n and_o authority_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v then_o the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o visible_a and_o militant_a church_n as_o also_o because_o it_o be_v call_v together_o against_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n by_o the_o wicked_a and_o curse_a synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n for_o that_o be_v the_o true_a church_n which_o adhere_v unto_o christ_n and_o believe_v in_o he_o but_o that_o other_o which_o be_v altogether_o deprive_v &_o have_v lose_v the_o true_a faith_n of_o christ_n be_v rather_o a_o fit_a church_n for_o satan_n and_o other_o infernal_a spirit_n and_o i_o marvel_v true_o that_o caluin_n and_o beza_n do_v allege_v that_o council_n as_o true_a and_o lawful_a which_o be_v assemble_v against_o christ_n himself_o as_o also_o by_o those_o who_o be_v not_o true_a believer_n ult._n âo_o 15._o v._n 22._o psal_n 117._o v._n 21._o isa_n 9_o v._n 9_o &_o 10._o isa_n 6._o v._n 14._o dan._n â_o v._o 26._o mat._n ult._n â_o ult._n in_o christ_n yea_o who_o be_v filthy_o stain_v with_o the_o most_o heinous_a sin_n of_o infidelity_n as_o christ_n humselfe_n witness_v but_o we_o willing_o leave_v such_o a_o church_n and_o council_n to_o our_o adversary_n 20._o it_o be_v also_o manifest_o foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n that_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v receyve_v by_o the_o jew_n and_o that_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n shall_v then_o fall_v from_o fine_a joa._n 14._o five_o 16._o calu._n c._n 9_o citato_fw-la sect_n 8._o s._n aug._n tun_n 6._o l._n 3._o contra_fw-la maxim_n arian_n episc_n c._n 14._o beza_n volu_fw-la 2._o tract_n theol._n tract_n 3._o de_fw-la pace_fw-la christianorum_fw-la eccles_n constit_fw-la cirâ_n finen_n pag._n 118._o iuxta_fw-la edit_fw-la gen_n a_o 1558._o calu._n sect_n citato_fw-la rupel_n confess_v art_n 5._o in_o fine_a her_o faith_n but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v the_o plain_a contrary_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n to_o wit_n that_o christ_n and_o his_o spirit_n shall_v remain_v with_o she_o for_o ever_o 21._o but_o neither_o be_v that_o other_o argument_n which_o caluin_n and_o beza_n use_v any_o better_a to_o wit_n that_o s._n augustine_n will_v not_o urge_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a against_o maximinus_n the_o arian_n for_o neither_o can_v we_o urge_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n against_o the_o jew_n not_o because_o we_o have_v any_o doubt_n thereof_o but_o because_o the_o jew_n do_v not_o admit_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n when_o that_o arian_n will_v not_o admit_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a but_o do_v plain_o reject_v it_o s._n augustine_n shall_v in_o vain_a have_v urge_v the_o authority_n thereof_o for_o otherwise_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o s._n augustine_n never_o have_v any_o doubt_n of_o the_o faith_n explicate_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a the_o which_o even_o our_o adversary_n embrace_v as_o the_o most_o true_a word_n of_o god_n 22._o such_o as_o desire_v to_o see_v any_o more_o concern_v this_o controversy_n of_o the_o general_n counsel_n let_v they_o read_v bellarmine_n in_o his_o first_o &_o second_o book_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a and_o coccius_n in_o his_o first_o tome_n the_o seven_o book_n the_o 21._o &_o 22._o article_n chap._n xi_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o ancient_a holy_a father_n now_o it_o remain_v we_o say_v somewhat_o of_o the_o ancient_a holy_a father_n and_o of_o their_o write_n both_o because_o they_o be_v in_o time_n past_o the_o chief_a member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n even_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n as_o also_o because_o in_o the_o particular_a controversy_n we_o shall_v often_o use_v the_o testimony_n &_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n 2._o we_o know_v indeed_o well_o enough_o that_o they_o be_v man_n and_o that_o they_o may_v have_v err_v but_o neither_o be_v they_o god_n nor_o angel_n who_o accuse_v they_o of_o their_o error_n we_o know_v also_o that_o one_o or_o more_o of_o the_o say_v holy_a father_n have_v sometime_o err_v when_o they_o leave_v the_o more_o common_a opinion_n of_o other_o 3._o but_o we_o affirm_v this_o constant_o that_o the_o ancient_a holy_a father_n receive_v by_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v never_o write_v any_o thing_n with_o a_o common_a and_o unanime_fw-la consent_n that_o be_v either_o contrary_n to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o to_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n 4._o moreover_o out_o of_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n in_o four_o diverse_a